Selected quad for the lemma: religion_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
religion_n church_n true_a visible_a 7,129 5 9.3865 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A15082 A replie to Iesuit Fishers answere to certain questions propou[n]ded by his most gratious Matie: King Iames By Francis White D: of DivĀ· deane of Carlile, chaplaine to his Matie. Hereunto is annexed, a conference of the right: R:B: of St Dauids wth the same Iesuit* White, Francis, 1564?-1638.; Laud, William, 1573-1645.; Baylie, Richard, b. 1585 or 6, attributed name.; Cockson, Thomas, engraver.; Fisher, John, 1569-1641. 1624 (1624) STC 25382; ESTC S122241 841,497 706

There are 28 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

certainty_n of_o christianity_n can_v but_o with_o it_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n answer_n the_o total_a certainty_n of_o christianity_n depend_v not_o upon_o a_o church_n illustrious_a and_o conspicuous_a to_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o have_v such_o external_a pomp_n and_o visibilitie_n as_o papal_n imagine_v 155._o therefore_o if_o such_o a_o church_n be_v overthrow_v that_o be_v be_v prove_v in_o sundry_a article_n to_o be_v corrupt_a and_o unfound_a which_o be_v our_o tenet_n concern_v the_o present_a roman_a church_n the_o certainty_n of_o christianity_n may_v still_o subsist_v the_o tenet_n which_o we_o maintain_v touch_v the_o quality_n of_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o reformation_n of_o error_n and_o abuse_n in_o the_o same_o and_o not_o to_o the_o overthrow_v of_o the_o lawful_a authority_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n the_o certainty_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o jew_n do_v depend_v as_o much_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o juda_n as_o it_o can_v in_o our_o day_n depend_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o of_o any_o other_o for_o that_o church_n be_v by_o office_n the_o keeper_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n rom._n 3_o 2._o the_o teacher_n of_o heavenly_a truth_n ezek._n 44_o 23_o mal._n 2_o 7._o a_o ministerial_a judge_n of_o controversy_n deut._n 17_o 9_o ezek._n 44_o 24._o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o say_a church_n be_v reprove_v by_o the_o holy_a prophet_n mal._n 2_o 8._o 2._o chron._n 29.6_o 7._o isaiah_n 56_o 10._o ezek._n 34._o and_o the_o religious_a king_n of_o juda_n reform_v the_o same_o 2._o chron._n 14.3_o 4._o and_o cap._n 17.7_o 8_o 9_o and_o cap._n 29.3_o etc._n etc._n and_o cap._n 34.3_o 4._o and_o cap._n 33.15_o now_o like_a as_o when_o a_o physician_n discover_v the_o disease_n of_o the_o body_n and_o prescribe_v remedy_n and_o medecine_n he_o do_v thereby_o heal_v and_o not_o destroy_v the_o state_n of_o the_o body_n so_o likewise_o they_o which_o out_o of_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n have_v reveal_v the_o error_n and_o corruption_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o seek_v reformation_n thereof_o 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o overthrow_v the_o certainty_n of_o christianity_n nor_o impair_v the_o lawful_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n but_o repair_n and_o establish_v the_o same_o jesuit_fw-la if_o it_o be_v hide_v and_o make_v invisible_a man_n must_v needs_o wander_v in_o the_o search_n of_o the_o first_o deliver_v christian_n doctrine_n without_o end_n or_o hope_n of_o ever_o arrive_v at_o any_o certain_a issue_n and_o if_o this_o controversy_n be_v not_o examine_v and_o determine_v in_o the_o first_o place_n disputation_n by_o scripture_n will_v prove_v fruitless_a by_o the_o 19_o sole_a evidence_n whereof_o no_o victory_n can_v be_v get_v against_o proteruious_a error_n or_o at_o least_o not_o victory_n that_o be_v very_o apparent_a neither_o will_n answer_v about_o particular_a doctrine_n satisfy_v a_o mind_n preoccupate_v with_o a_o long_a continue_a dislike_n of_o they_o answer_n in_o this_o section_n two_o thing_n be_v deliver_v first_o if_o the_o church_n be_v hide_v etc._n etc._n second_o controversy_n can_v be_v decide_v by_o sole_a scripture_n etc._n etc._n to_o the_o first_o i_o answer_v the_o church_n that_o be_v the_o society_n of_o christian_a people_n profess_v save_a faith_n be_v at_o no_o time_n total_o bid_v and_o invisible_a 〈◊〉_d but_o in_o persecution_n the_o same_o may_v be_v hide_v and_o unknown_a to_o they_o which_o 〈◊〉_d no_o will_n to_o know_v it_o 2._o cor._n 4_o 3._o or_o which_o desire_n to_o know_v it_o that_o they_o may_v persecute_v and_o oppress_v it_o revelat._n 12_o 14._o and_o the_o same_o may_v sometime_o cease_v to_o be_v large_o and_o in_o a_o 〈◊〉_d and_o pompous_a manner_n visible_a math._n 10_o 23._o and_o 23_o 34._o heb._n 11_o 38._o and_o in_o the_o state_n of_o persecution_n when_o the_o same_o be_v hide_v and_o unknown_a to_o enemy_n the_o friend_n of_o this_o church_n to_o who_o it_o be_v know_v may_v by_o the_o ministry_n thereof_o exercise_v in_o private_a 6._o receive_v the_o certainty_n of_o belief_n and_o if_o it_o be_v unknown_a or_o hide_a to_o any_o of_o they_o these_o may_v by_o private_a read_n or_o meditation_n of_o that_o which_o they_o have_v former_o learn_v supply_v the_o defect_n of_o public_a ministry_n filios_fw-la even_o as_o some_o christian_n at_o this_o day_n be_v slave_n in_o turkey_n or_o barbary_n may_v be_v save_v without_o external_a ministry_n and_o it_o be_v also_o possible_a for_o such_o to_o be_v instrument_n of_o convert_n and_o save_v other_o conuersam_fw-la ruffian_n hist._n eccles._n li._n 1._o c._n 9_o &_o 10._o beside_o we_o do_v also_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o popish_a church_n although_o it_o be_v corrupt_a and_o unsound_a in_o many_o thing_n yet_o it_o preserve_v the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o teach_v the_o apostle_n creed_n and_o sundry_a part_n of_o divine_a verity_n collect_v from_o the_o same_o conversos_fw-la and_o by_o these_o principle_n of_o christianity_n preserve_v in_o that_o church_n judicious_a and_o pious_a man_n may_v with_o study_n and_o diligence_n find_v out_o what_o be_v the_o first_o deliver_v christian_n doctrine_n in_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o in_o the_o jewish_a church_n when_o the_o same_o be_v corrupt_v in_o manner_n and_o doctrine_n mal._n 2_o 8._o isaiah_n 56_o 10._o 2._o king_n 16_o 11_o 16._o marc._n 6_o 34._o the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o many_o remnant_n of_o divine_a truth_n which_o be_v able_a to_o save_v god_n elect_v remain_v and_o be_v sufficient_a principle_n from_o whence_o all_o save_a truth_n may_v be_v derive_v indicare_fw-la and_o pernicious_a error_n and_o abuse_n discover_v and_o reform_v and_o thus_o although_o the_o true_a church_n be_v grant_v at_o sometime_o to_o be_v hide_v and_o invisible_a in_o manner_n before_o express_v well_o affect_v people_n shall_v not_o want_v all_o mean_n to_o understand_v what_o be_v the_o first_o deliver_v christian_n faith_n the_o jesuit_n in_o the_o next_o passage_n labour_v to_o make_v it_o appear_v impossible_a to_o end_v and_o determine_v controversy_n of_o religion_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o perpetual_a visible_a church_n who_o judgement_n be_v always_o infallible_a and_o free_a from_o all_o error_n but_o if_o his_o speech_n be_v resolve_v from_o a_o rhethoricall_a flourish_n into_o form_n of_o argument_n the_o looseness_n of_o it_o will_v appear_v for_o he_o proceed_v in_o this_o or_o the_o like_a manner_n jesuit_fw-la by_o all_o such_o mean_n as_o be_v of_o itself_o sufficient_a to_o declare_v what_o be_v the_o first_o deliver_v christian_n doctrine_n apparent_a victory_n may_v be_v get_v against_o proteruious_a error_n and_o mind_n preoccupate_v with_o long_a dislike_n of_o particular_a doctrine_n may_v be_v satisfy_v by_o sole_a scripture_n no_o apparent_a victory_n can_v be_v get_v against_o proteruious_a error_n neither_o can_v long_o dislike_v of_o particular_a doctrine_n be_v satisfy_v ergo_fw-la sole_a scripture_n be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a mean_n to_o declare_v what_o be_v the_o first_o deliver_v christian_n doctrine_n answer_n first_o if_o by_o apparent_a victory_n be_v mean_v such_o victory_n as_o proteruious_a errant_n will_v confess_v or_o persuade_v themselves_o to_o be_v a_o victory_n against_o they_o than_o the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v false_a for_o when_o our_o saviour_n himself_o confute_v the_o pharisee_n by_o such_o demonstration_n as_o none_o can_v be_v great_a yet_o they_o resist_v the_o truth_n and_o in_o like_a sort_n they_o resist_v st._n stephen_n act_v 7_o 53._o and_o s._n paul_n act_v 28_o 23._o and_o in_o the_o best_a counsel_n of_o nice_a ephesus_n etc._n etc._n no_o such_o apparent_a victory_n be_v get_v of_o proteruious_a heretic_n 〈◊〉_d second_o if_o by_o apparent_a victory_n be_v mean_v a_o true_a and_o sufficient_a confutation_n and_o conviction_n of_o errant_n than_o the_o minor_a be_v false_a for_o that_o be_v a_o sufficient_a mean_n to_o obtain_v victory_n by_o which_o our_o saviour_n himself_o subdue_v satan_n math._n 4.4_o 7._o and_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n math._n 12_o 3._o &_o 22_o 29_o 43._o and_o by_o which_o st._n paul_n confute_v the_o pharisee_n and_o other_o adversary_n act_n 17_o 2._o and_o 28_o 23._o and_o whereby_o the_o father_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n convict_v the_o arrian_n 2._o socrat._v hist._n l._n 1._o c._n 6._o 〈◊〉_d and_o which_o be_v give_v by_o inspiration_n to_o be_v a_o effectual_a mean_n to_o reprove_v and_o confute_v error_n 2._o tim._n 3_o 16._o chrys._n d._n fid_fw-we &_o leg_n nat_n 〈◊〉_d but_o the_o jesuit_n may_v cavil_v say_v that_o even_o as_o a_o sword_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o giant_n be_v sufficient_a to_o 〈◊〉_d a_o enemy_n but_o not_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o child_n who_o
compass_v about_o with_o ignorance_n and_o infirmity_n and_o at_o some_o time_n better_o or_o worse_o qualify_v than_o at_o other_o also_o the_o true_a church_n in_o firmissimis_fw-la suis_fw-la in_o her_o firm_a member_n be_v 〈◊〉_d holy_a for_o life_n because_o the_o holy_a of_o holy_a sanctify_v and_o purge_v the_o same_o by_o his_o word_n sacrament_n and_o grace_n eph._n 5.26_o tit._n 3.5_o 6._o but_o it_o be_v not_o absolute_a in_o holiness_n jam._n 3.2_o 1._o joh._n 1.8_o etc._n nor_o yet_o in_o every_o age_n so_o remarkable_o holy_a that_o it_o be_v thereby_o able_a to_o convert_v infidel_n vitiorum_fw-la and_o the_o true_a church_n have_v not_o in_o all_o age_n the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n ecclesia_fw-la and_o the_o pretext_n of_o miracle_n be_v common_a to_o deceiver_n math._n 24.24_o 25._o 2._o thessaly_n 2.9_o apoc._n 13.13_o and_o suares_n etc._n the_o jesuit_n say_v haec_fw-la adulterari_fw-la possunt_fw-la &_o ita_fw-la exterius_fw-la fingi_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la sint_fw-la necessaria_fw-la signa_fw-la verae_fw-la fidei_fw-la miracle_n may_v so_o be_v adulterate_v and_o external_o feign_v that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v necessary_a sign_n of_o faith_n and_o canus_n 6._o speak_v of_o popish_a miracle_n and_o legend_n say_v nostri_fw-la pleriquè_fw-fr de_fw-fr industria_fw-la ita_fw-la multa_fw-la 〈◊〉_d ut_fw-la eorum_fw-la i_o pudeat_fw-la &_o taedeat_fw-la sundry_a of_o our_o man_n do_v so_o wilful_o coin_n many_o thing_n in_o their_o report_n of_o miracle_n that_o i_o be_o ashamed_a and_o irk_a of_o they_o jesuit_fw-la that_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a apostolical_a church_n from_o and_o by_o which_o we_o be_v to_o receive_v the_o tradition_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n these_o ground_n be_v lay_v it_o be_v apparent_a that_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o be_v the_o multitude_n of_o christian_n spread_v over_o the_o world_n cleave_v to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a church_n answer_n the_o former_a ground_n according_a to_o your_o delivery_n and_o exposition_n of_o they_o be_v partly_o false_a and_o partly_o ambiguous_a and_o captious_a and_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v make_v apparent_a from_o they_o that_o the_o modern_a roman_a church_n be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a church_n from_o which_o we_o be_v absolute_o to_o receive_v the_o whole_a tradition_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n jesvit_n 1._o argument_n there_o mnst_a be_v always_o in_o the_o world_n one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a church_n that_o be_v a_o church_n deliver_v doctrine_n uniform_o thereby_o make_v they_o credible_a vniversal_o thereby_o make_v they_o famous_o know_v to_o mankind_n holy_o so_o make_v they_o certain_a and_o such_o as_o on_o they_o we_o may_v secure_o rely_v apostolical_o so_o make_v they_o perpetual_o flow_v without_o change_n unto_o the_o present_a christianity_n in_o the_o channel_n of_o never_o interrupt_v succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o this_o church_n must_v either_o be_v the_o roman_a or_o the_o protestant_n or_o some_o other_o opposite_a to_o both_o protestant_n can_v say_v a_o church_n opposite_a to_o both_o for_o than_o they_o shall_v be_v condemn_v in_o their_o own_o judgement_n and_o bind_v to_o conform_v themselves_o to_o that_o church_n which_o can_v be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o grecian_a a_o church_n hold_v as_o many_o or_o more_o doctrine_n which_o protestant_n dislike_v than_o do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o i_o can_v demonstrate_v if_o need_v be_v answer_n there_o must_v be_v always_o in_o the_o world_n a_o church_n one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a that_o be_v a_o number_n of_o christian_n believe_v and_o 〈◊〉_d &_o profess_v christianity_n to_o the_o sound_a part_n whereof_o the_o property_n of_o one_o holy_a catholic_a apostolical_a belong_v but_o there_o be_v not_o always_o in_o the_o world_n a_o hierarchiall_a visible_a church_n consist_v of_o prelate_n and_o people_n unite_v in_o one_o external_a form_n of_o policy_n and_o profession_n of_o religion_n under_o a_o universal_a pope_n to_o which_o alone_o these_o four_o title_n be_v proper_a or_o principal_o belong_v and_o there_o may_v be_v a_o orthodoxal_a apostolical_a church_n consist_v of_o a_o small_a number_n of_o inferior_a pastor_n and_o right_a believe_a christian_n oppose_v and_o persecute_v by_o the_o hierarchiall_a part_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n even_o as_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n manasses_n and_o other_o idolatrous_a king_n of_o juda_n iubere_fw-la when_o idolatry_n prevail_v among_o the_o priest_n and_o general_a multitude_n there_o be_v a_o remnant_n of_o holy_a people_n worship_v god_n according_a to_o his_o word_n and_o not_o defile_v with_o the_o impiety_n of_o those_o time_n now_o concern_v the_o disiunctive_a part_n of_o the_o jesuit_n argument_n which_o be_v this_o church_n must_v either_o be_v the_o roman_a or_o the_o protestant_n or_o some_o other_o opposite_a to_o both_o it_o be_v answer_v the_o protestant_a church_n be_v that_o true_a and_o orthodoxal_a church_n which_o be_v one_o holy_a apostolic_a and_o a_o sound_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_a for_o although_o the_o same_o may_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v have_v beginning_n in_o luther_n age_n yet_o this_o be_v untrue_a concern_v the_o essence_n and_o kind_a and_o be_v true_a only_o touch_v the_o name_n and_o some_o thing_n accidental_a for_o in_o all_o age_n and_o before_o luther_n some_o person_n hold_v the_o substantial_a article_n of_o our_o religion_n both_o in_o the_o roman_a and_o grecian_a church_n and_o by_o name_n the_o grecian_n maintain_v these_o article_n in_o common_a with_o we_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v not_o primacy_n of_o jurisdiction_n authority_n and_o grace_n above_o or_o over_o all_o other_o church_n neither_o be_v the_o same_o infallible_a in_o her_o definition_n of_o faith_n they_o deny_v purgatory_n private_a mass_n sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o they_o propugne_v the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n in_o this_o western_a part_n of_o the_o world_n the_o waldense_n taborites_n of_o bohemia_n the_o scholar_n of_o wiclife_n call_v in_o england_n lollard_n maintain_v the_o same_o doctrine_n in_o substance_n with_o the_o modern_a protestant_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o confession_n of_o their_o faith_n etc._n and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o some_o learned_a pontifician_n habuit_fw-la and_o concern_v certain_a difference_n object_v to_o have_v be_v between_o they_o and_o we_o we_o shall_v afterward_o show_v that_o the_o same_o be_v no_o great_a than_o such_o as_o have_v be_v ancient_o among_o the_o father_n and_o there_o be_v as_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o elder_a and_o modern_a romist_n in_o many_o passage_n of_o their_o doctrine_n but_o now_o on_o the_o contrary_a if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o we_o can_v not_o for_o certain_a age_n past_a nominate_v or_o assign_v out_o of_o history_n any_o other_o visible_a church_n beside_o the_o roman_a or_o grecian_a yet_o because_o right_a faith_n may_v be_v preserve_v in_o person_n live_v in_o a_o corrupt_a visible_a church_n as_o wheat_n among_o tare_n 1._o king_n 19_o 11._o and_o because_o god_n have_v promise_v there_o shall_v be_v always_o in_o the_o world_n a_o true_a church_n have_v either_o a_o large_a or_o small_a number_n of_o professor_n if_o protestant_n be_v able_a to_o demonstrate_v that_o they_o maintain_v the_o same_o faith_n deotradidit_fw-la and_o religion_n which_o the_o holy_a apostle_n teach_v this_o alone_a be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v they_o be_v the_o true_a church_n jesuit_fw-la it_o be_v also_o most_o manifest_a and_o undeniable_a that_o protestant_n be_v not_o such_o a_o church_n nor_o part_n of_o such_o a_o church_n since_o their_o revoult_v and_o separation_n from_o the_o roman_a see_v confess_o they_o change_v their_o doctrine_n they_o once_o hold_v forsake_v the_o body_n whereof_o they_o be_v member_n break_v off_o from_o the_o stock_n of_o that_o tree_n whereof_o they_o be_v branch_n neither_o do_v they_o depart_v from_o the_o roman_a join_v themselves_o with_o any_o other_o church_n profess_v their_o particular_a doctrine_n dissonant_n from_o it_o ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a church_n etc._n etc._n answer_n bold_n word_n it_o be_v most_o manifest_a and_o undeniable_a miserable_a proof_n they_o change_v their_o doctrine_n they_o once_o hold_v etc._n etc._n if_o the_o pharisee_n have_v argue_v in_o this_o manner_n against_o saint_n paul_n or_o the_o manichee_n and_o pelagian_n meum_fw-la against_o saint_n augustine_n the_o one_o will_v have_v tell_v they_o that_o it_o be_v no_o fault_n to_o forsake_v the_o leaven_n of_o tradition_n to_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n confirm_v by_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o other_o will_v have_v plead_v most_o just_o that_o it_o be_v a_o virtue_n and_o honour_n to_o forsake_v error_n and_o to_o embrace_v verity_n god_n people_n be_v command_v upon_o a_o
effigy_n doctissimi_fw-la uiri_fw-la d_o ni_fw-fr francisci_fw-la white_a s._n t._n professoris_fw-la et_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la cathis_n carleolensis_n decani_fw-la aº_n aeta_fw-la 59_o anno_fw-la 1624._o wisdom_n and_o grace_n see_v in_o that_o modest_a look_n truth_n be_v 〈◊〉_d error_n downfall_n in_o this_o book_n maerebunt_fw-la piscatores_fw-la isa._n 19_o 8._o honi_fw-fr soit_fw-fr qvi_fw-fr mal_fw-fr y_fw-fr pense_fw-fr beati_fw-la pacifici_fw-la bv_fw-la francis_n white_a d._n of_o div_o deane_n of_o carlisle_n chaplain_n to_o his_o majesty_n hereunto_o be_v annex_v a_o conference_n of_o the_o right_n r_o b_o of_o st_n david_n with_o the_o same_o jesuit_n cirprianus_fw-la de_fw-la lapsis_fw-la nec_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la iungitur_fw-la qui_fw-la ab_fw-la euamgelio_n seperatur_fw-la veritas_fw-la vnivoca_fw-la veritate_fw-la aperit_fw-la dies._fw-la mendaciu_n aequivocum_fw-la error_n caecus_n et_fw-la fallax_fw-la piscatoris_fw-la rete_fw-la habet_fw-la ranas_fw-la london_n print_v by_o adam_n islip_n 1624._o to_o the_o most_o high_a and_o potent_a monarch_n james_n of_o great_a britain_n france_n and_o ireland_n king_n defender_n of_o the_o faith_n my_o sovereign_a lord_n and_o master_n most_o gracious_a and_o religious_a sovereign_n it_o be_v apparent_a that_o the_o external_a tuition_n and_o projection_n of_o orthodoxal_a verity_n and_o religion_n next_o under_o the_o almighty_a do_v principal_o belong_v to_o christian_a prince_n which_o be_v by_o office_n and_o vocation_n the_o lord_n anoint_v son_n of_o the_o most_o high_a and_o supreme_a regent_n of_o this_o inferior_a world_n under_o god_n the_o donate_v in_o time_n past_o deny_v the_o lawful_a authority_n of_o christian_a prince_n in_o superuise_v and_o external_a govern_v ecclesiastical_a cause_n say_v quid_fw-la est_fw-la imperatori_fw-la cum_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la what_o have_v imperial_a or_o regal_a majesty_n to_o do_v with_o the_o church_n but_o optatus_n style_v this_o a_o brainsick_a parmen_fw-la error_n say_v ille_fw-la parmenio_n furore_fw-la succensus_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o s._n augustine_n contest_v with_o these_o 51._o malapert_v heretic_n say_v in_o hoc_fw-la reges_fw-la deo_fw-la seruiunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n king_n according_a to_o the_o divine_a precept_n serve_v the_o lord_n as_o they_o be_v king_n when_o they_o command_v good_a and_o prohibit_v evil_a not_o in_o civil_a affair_n only_o but_o in_o matter_n which_o concern_v divine_a religion_n jsiodor_n hispal_n say_v 53._o secular_a prince_n sometime_o that_o be_v when_o they_o be_v christian_n have_v eminent_a authority_n intra_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la within_o the_o church_n to_o fortify_v ecclesiastical_a discipline_n prince_n of_o the_o earth_n say_v s._n augustine_n serve_v christ_n by_o make_v law_n for_o vincent_n christ._n and_o again_o civil_a virtue_n in_o high_a macedon_n power_n avail_v they_o not_o for_o eternal_a beatitude_n unless_o withal_o they_o govern_v their_o people_n in_o true_a religion_n and_o in_o another_o epistle_n it_o appertain_v dulcit_fw-la to_o religious_a prince_n to_o repress_v by_o just_a severity_n not_o only_a adultery_n homicide_n and_o other_o heinous_a crime_n against_o man_n but_o also_o sacrilegious_a jmpietie_n against_o god_n the_o evangelicall_a prophet_n foretells_a that_o king_n shall_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nurse_n or_o foster-fathers_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n esa._n 49.23_o also_o they_o be_v shepherd_n of_o the_o almighty_a and_o concurrent_n for_o the_o build_n of_o his_o house_n esa._n 44.28_o king_n josiah_n reform_v the_o jewish_a church_n suppress_v impiety_n restore_v true_a religion_n 2._o king_n 23._o and_o he_o be_v herein_o so_o far_o from_o transcend_v the_o bound_n of_o regal_a authority_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n faith_n of_o he_o like_o he_o be_v there_o no_o king_n before_o he_o neither_o after_o he_o arise_v there_o any_o like_a constantine_n the_o 7._o great_a by_o imperial_a law_n establish_v true_a religion_n he_o appoint_v festival_n day_n prescribe_v what_o bishop_n shall_v do_v for_o the_o church_n avail_n he_o 〈◊〉_d synod_n be_v himself_o a_o assessor_n and_o agent_n among_o the_o nicene_n father_n he_o 〈◊〉_d and_o direct_v the_o bishop_n he_o confirm_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o great_a council_n of_o nice_a and_o compel_v his_o christian_a subject_n to_o profess_v the_o faith_n determine_v in_o that_o synod_n now_o of_o this_o grand_a patron_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o the_o true_a professor_n thereof_o s._n augustine_n affirm_v the_o god_n of_o heaven_n enrich_v he_o with_o such_o large_a blessing_n in_o this_o world_n quanta_fw-la optare_fw-la nullus_fw-la 25._o auderet_fw-la as_o one_o can_v not_o have_v presume_v to_o wish_v s._n cyrill_n of_o alexandria_n write_v to_o christian_a prince_n which_o do_v the_o like_a say_v the_o orient_a pearl_n and_o bright-shining_a diamond_n of_o jndia_n do_v not_o so_o much_o adorn_v your_o royal_a head_n as_o your_o care_n and_o protection_n of_o true_a piety_n make_v your_o sacred_a person_n venerable_a and_o glorious_a your_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n walk_v in_o the_o religious_a way_n of_o those_o renown_a prince_n and_o their_o example_n have_v ever_o be_v the_o precedent_n of_o the_o exercise_v your_o royal_a authority_n in_o sacred_a cause_n and_o of_o your_o constant_a resolution_n in_o profess_v and_o protect_v true_a religion_n the_o almighty_a have_v place_v you_o within_o your_o dominion_n his_o supreme_a vicegerent_n he_o have_v make_v you_o great_a than_o joseph_n over_o his_o house_n and_o a_o joshua_n over_o his_o people_n you_o be_v a_o signet_n upon_o the_o lord_n right_a hand_n never_o to_o be_v pluck_v off_o he_o have_v exalt_v you_o in_o hominem_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la secundum_fw-la &_o quicquid_fw-la est_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la consecutum_fw-la &_o solo_fw-la deo_fw-la minorem_fw-la as_o tertullian_n speak_v 2._o the_o immediate_a visible_a person_n within_o your_o kingdom_n under_o himself_o receive_v all_o your_o authority_n and_o majesty_n from_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o he_o have_v make_v you_o inferior_a to_o none_o but_o himself_o and_o to_o use_v s._n cyrils_n word_n utter_v to_o theodos_fw-la theodosius_n vestrae_fw-la serenitati_fw-la nullus_fw-la status_fw-la est_fw-la aequalis_fw-la no_o state_n be_v equal_a much_o less_o may_v overtop_v your_o serene_a majesty_n but_o together_o with_o your_o regal_a power_n and_o scientia_fw-la authority_n the_o almighty_a have_v enrich_v your_o heart_n above_o many_o other_o prince_n of_o the_o world_n with_o incomparable_a wisdom_n and_o judgement_n in_o matter_n religious_a and_o divine_a as_o not_o only_o your_o own_o subject_n but_o even_o foreigner_n have_v observe_v and_o that_o be_v fulfil_v in_o you_o which_o s._n athanasius_n once_o utter_v in_o a_o epistle_n to_o jovianus_fw-la the_o emperor_n decora_fw-la &_o eximia_fw-la res_fw-la est_fw-la in_o principe_fw-la mens_fw-la discendi_fw-la avida_fw-la &_o rerum_fw-la coelestium_fw-la cupido_fw-la inde_fw-la enim_fw-la fit_a ut_fw-la cor_fw-la tuum_fw-la veer_fw-la sie_n in_o manu_fw-la dei_fw-la it_o be_v a_o gracious_a and_o excellent_a quality_n in_o a_o great_a prince_n to_o have_v a_o mind_n desirous_a of_o knowledge_n and_o affect_v the_o intelligence_n of_o celestial_a thing_n for_o hereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o your_o heart_n be_v indeed_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n it_o be_v the_o happiness_n therefore_o of_o your_o loyal_a and_o orthodoxal_a subject_n which_o answer_n for_o verity_n against_o error_n that_o they_o may_v defend_v the_o same_o before_o a_o king_n expert_a in_o the_o question_n whereof_o they_o dispute_v and_o who_o cleare-seeing_a judgement_n like_o the_o fine_v furnace_n be_v able_a to_o make_v difference_n between_o gold_n and_o dross_n and_o this_o have_v animate_v i_o to_o present_v my_o reply_n to_o a_o jesuit_n answer_v of_o certain_a question_n controvert_v between_o papal_o and_o we_o to_o your_o most_o sacred_a majesty_n i_o receive_v the_o adversary_n disputation_n by_o my_o lord_n duke_n of_o buckingham_n who_o enjoin_v i_o in_o your_o majesty_n name_n to_o examine_v and_o answer_v the_o same_o i_o can_v not_o but_o admire_v your_o princely_a zeal_n to_o have_v true_a religion_n maintain_v as_o well_o by_o disputation_n as_o by_o your_o just_a law_n and_o although_o i_o be_v conscious_a to_o myself_o of_o the_o want_n of_o those_o more_o eminent_a grace_n which_o be_v find_v in_o great_a divine_n yet_o have_v sensible_o observe_v your_o own_o unfeigned_a and_o 〈◊〉_d love_v to_o the_o religion_n which_o we_o profess_v and_o be_v great_o encourage_v by_o the_o noble_a duke_n who_o be_v your_o majesty_n very_a image_n in_o the_o constant_a profession_n and_o maintenance_n of_o orthodoxal_a verity_n i_o become_v obedient_a to_o your_o sacred_a commandment_n and_o now_o conclude_v i_o most_o humble_o desire_v you_o who_o resemble_v he_o that_o dwell_v on_o high_a despise_v not_o thing_n below_o accept_v even_o the_o poor_a widow_n mite_n and_o goat_n hair_n where_o great_a 25.4_o substance_n be_v want_v to_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o consecrate_v this_o my_o reply_n to_o your_o most_o serene_a majesty_n i_o confess_v this_o work_n to_o be_v overmeane_n
s._n august_n enchirid._n c._n 5.6_o etc._n etc._n donatist_n lib._n 7._o cap._n 50._o wicked_a people_n may_v be_v call_v god_n house_n because_o of_o external_a call_n and_o visible_a profession_n 2._o tim._n 2._o 20._o sed_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la de_fw-fr compage_fw-la domus_fw-la they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o frame_n of_o the_o house_n videantur_fw-la heb._n 3._o 6._o august_n d._n bapt._n lib._n 7._o cap._n 50._o all_o they_o which_o covet_v earthly_a thing_n prefer_v worldly_a felicity_n before_o god_n they_o which_o seek_v their_o own_o and_o not_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v jesus_n christ_n ad_fw-la unam_fw-la civitatem_fw-la illam_fw-la pertinent_a quae_fw-la dicitur_fw-la babylonia_n mystice_fw-la &_o habet_fw-la regem_fw-la diabolum_fw-la belong_v only_o to_o that_o city_n which_o in_o a_o mystery_n be_v call_v babylon_n and_o have_v the_o devil_n the_o head_n aug._n sup_v psal._n 61._o wicked_a person_n 68_o say_v s._n augustine_n epist._n 50._o figuram_fw-la membri_fw-la tenent_fw-la retain_v the_o figure_n or_o outward_a shape_n of_o a_o member_n sed_fw-la revera_fw-la corpus_fw-la domini_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la but_o they_o be_v not_o in_o truth_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n august_n d._n doct._n christ._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 32._o in_o corpore_fw-la christi_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o church_n august_n c._n crescon_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 21._o but_o they_o which_o be_v not_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n nor_o of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n real_o and_o in_o truth_n do_v not_o constant_o preserve_v or_o faithful_o deliver_v apostolical_a tradition_n neither_o be_v they_o one_o or_o holy_a nor_o yet_o such_o as_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n infallible_o and_o always_o direct_v in_o their_o public_a doctrine_n observat._n v._n the_o quality_n of_o unity_n holiness_n verity_n apostolical_a succession_n and_o other_o the_o like_a be_v not_o always_o find_v in_o the_o true_a church_n equal_o or_o in_o the_o same_o degree_n and_o measure_n of_o perfection_n but_o according_a to_o a_o latitude_n and_o inequality_n of_o intention_n and_o remission_n and_o more_o or_o less_o so_o that_o although_o the_o sound_a part_n of_o the_o church_n have_v always_o the_o substance_n of_o truth_n sanctity_n and_o unity_n yet_o this_o verity_n of_o doctrine_n unity_n of_o charity_n sanctity_n of_o manner_n be_v great_a large_a and_o more_o sincere_a and_o perfect_a in_o some_o person_n and_o age_n of_o the_o church_n than_o in_o other_o these_o quality_n be_v in_o their_o great_a perfection_n when_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o live_v 〈◊〉_d they_o be_v in_o great_a measure_n in_o the_o age_n immediate_o abut_a upon_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o holy_a father_n complain_v of_o the_o decrease_n and_o decay_v of_o they_o in_o after_o time_n 4._o and_o papist_n deplore_v the_o extreme_a diminution_n of_o they_o in_o their_o day_n 523._o observat._n vi._n it_o fall_v out_o sometime_o in_o the_o outward_a state_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n that_o wicked_a person_n which_o be_v not_o sound_a part_n of_o god_n house_n nor_o live_a member_n of_o christ_n mystical_a body_n be_v more_o in_o number_n justum_fw-la and_o great_a in_o power_n do_v possess_v the_o chief_a place_n of_o public_a judicature_n and_o ecclesiastical_a government_n and_o be_v thus_o exalt_v and_o withal_o abet_v by_o worldly_a power_n and_o swarm_n of_o time-feruers_a earum_fw-la who_o they_o advance_v and_o honour_v to_o accomplish_v their_o own_o end_n it_o may_v hereby_o fall_v out_o that_o the_o outward_a state_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n shall_v be_v order_v and_o sway_v according_a to_o the_o lust_n and_o will_n of_o wicked_a ruler_n 5._o and_o then_o good_a man_n may_v be_v disgrace_v depress_v and_o persecute_v the_o simple_a and_o they_o which_o be_v negligent_a didicisset_fw-la unlearned_a and_o secure_a may_v be_v delude_v and_o error_n and_o superstition_n crafty_o and_o covert_o be_v bring_v in_o and_o that_o be_v fulfil_v which_o gregory_n say_v dum_fw-la mali_fw-la praepositi_fw-la svam_fw-la contra_fw-la veritatem_fw-la honorem_fw-la exigunt_fw-la ab_fw-la omni_fw-la rectitudine_fw-la corda_fw-la sequentium_fw-la abducunt_fw-la sunt_fw-la when_o wicked_a ruler_n seek_v their_o own_o glory_n more_o than_o truth_n they_o mislead_v their_o follower_n from_o all_o course_n of_o righteousness_n this_o happen_v in_o the_o jewish_a church_n when_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n and_o other_o hypocrite_n and_o errant_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d master-builder_n math._n 21.41_o and_o the_o evil_a servant_n bear_v rule_v in_o the_o household_n and_o oppress_v his_o fellow-servant_n matth._n 24._o 49._o diotrophe_n excommunicate_n and_o usurp_v according_a to_o his_o own_o will_n divina_fw-la 3._o ep._n joh._n 9_o 10._o the_o arrian_n in_o the_o day_n of_o constantius_n and_o valence_n do_v all_o the_o former_a in_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n offunderetur_fw-la the_o same_o happen_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n especial_o after_o the_o thousand_o year_n one_o man_n usurp_v over_o the_o christian_a world_n make_v himself_o on_o earth_n chief_a and_o sole_a commander_n over_o thing_n divine_a and_o humane_a 〈◊〉_d his_o power_n be_v so_o exorbitant_a and_o boundless_a that_o he_o tread_v upon_o the_o neck_n of_o king_n ecclesia_fw-la thron_v and_o dethrone_v crown_v and_o decrow_v they_o as_o himself_o list_v his_o dominion_n be_v so_o absolute_a and_o vast_a as_o that_o no_o man_n may_v reprove_v or_o withstand_v he_o mutare_fw-la all_o man_n be_v repute_v heretic_n or_o schismatickes_n which_o will_v not_o say_v and_o swear_v as_o he_o command_v 241._o in_o synod_n and_o counsel_n cause_n be_v transact_v according_a to_o his_o will_n 70._o and_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o right_a to_o life_n eternal_a be_v entail_v to_o his_o chair_n 5._o jesuit_fw-la this_o principle_n be_v consequent_a upon_o the_o former_a and_o out_o of_o it_o six_o thing_n may_v be_v clear_o prove_v first_o that_o there_o be_v always_o a_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o world_n for_o if_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n for_o man_n to_o know_v that_o scripture_n and_o other_o substantial_a article_n come_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o so_o consequent_o from_o god_n but_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n then_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o all_o age_n a_o church_n receive_v and_o deliver_v these_o tradition_n else_o man_n in_o some_o age_n since_o christ_n shall_v have_v be_v destitute_a of_o the_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o salvation_n because_o they_o have_v not_o mean_n to_o know_v assure_o the_o substantial_a article_n of_o christianity_n without_o assure_a faith_n whereof_o no_o man_n be_v save_v answer_n by_o true_a church_n we_o may_v understand_v either_o a_o universal_a maltitude_n of_o believer_n total_o in_o respect_n of_o all_o person_n or_o distributive_o in_o regard_n of_o they_o which_o principal_o rule_v and_o command_v free_a from_o error_n in_o public_a doctrine_n or_o else_o a_o choice_n and_o select_a number_n of_o believer_n live_v either_o in_o the_o common_a fellowship_n of_o the_o general_a visible_a church_n or_o unite_v in_o particular_a congregation_n by_o themselves_o teach_v and_o profess_v right_a faith_n in_o all_o capital_a point_n and_o ready_a to_o embrace_v all_o divine_a truth_n when_o the_o same_o be_v manifest_v unto_o they_o if_o the_o name_n of_o true_a church_n be_v take_v in_o the_o first_o sense_n or_o for_o a_o hierarchicall_a church_n wherein_o the_o principal_a commander_n teach_v and_o maintain_v truth_n entire_o and_o sincere_o than_o the_o proposition_n to_o wit_n there_o be_v always_o a_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o world_n be_v deny_v for_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o the_o great_a prelate_n to_o wit_n pope_n cardinal_n mitre_a bishop_n and_o abbot_n of_o which_o the_o hierarchicall_a church_n principal_o consist_v shall_v be_v reprobate_n reprobis_fw-la blind_a guide_n 1533._o a_o generation_n of_o viper_n wolf_n in_o sheep_n clothing_n and_o such_o as_o be_v arm_v with_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n persecute_v the_o true_a church_n incautos_fw-la and_o that_o this_o be_v possible_a it_o appear_v first_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o archruler_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n which_o in_o some_o age_n corrupt_v true_a religion_n and_o persecute_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n 2._o chron._n 36._o 14._o moreover_o all_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o people_n transgress_v very_o much_o after_o all_o the_o abomination_n of_o the_o heathen_a and_o pollute_v the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n v._n 16._o they_o mock_v the_o messenger_n of_o god_n and_o dospise_v his_o word_n and_o misuse_v his_o prophet_n etc._n etc._n read_v 2._o king_n 16._o 11_o 16._o jerem._n 2.8_o isaiah_n 56.10_o malach._n 2.8_o jerem._n 20.1_o &_o 23.1_o 2._o machab._n 4.10_o ezek._n 34.4_o mark_n 6.35_o math._n 3.7_o matth._n 23._o 13._o luk._n 12._o 1._o matth._n
16._o 12._o john_n 10._o 8._o ezek._n 22._o 26._o second_o the_o same_o appear_v to_o be_v true_a both_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o great_a prelate_n of_o the_o asian_a church_n which_o corrupt_v true_a doctrine_n and_o worship_n and_o provoke_v the_o almighty_a so_o much_o that_o he_o remoove_v their_o candlestick_n out_o of_o his_o place_n and_o also_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o west_n church_n itself_o wherein_o pope_n and_o great_a prelate_n have_v be_v illiterate_a monster_n devil_n incarnate_a apostate_n man_n defile_v with_o all_o wickedness_n and_o abominable_a sin_n as_o papist_n themselves_o report_n prophecarum_fw-la and_o concern_v doctrine_n it_o be_v evident_a by_o compare_v their_o decree_n with_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o counsel_n that_o they_o be_v in_o many_o thing_n depart_v from_o the_o truth_n and_o occam_n irreprehensibilis_fw-la say_v omnis_fw-la congregatio_fw-la quae_fw-la potest_fw-la errare_fw-la contra_fw-la bonos_fw-es more_o be_v potest_fw-la errare_fw-la contra_fw-la fidem_fw-la quia_fw-la mali_fw-la mores_fw-la excacant_fw-la intellectum_fw-la because_o evil_a manner_n blind_v the_o judgement_n therefore_o every_o assembly_n which_o may_v err_v notorious_o in_o manner_n may_v err_v against_o the_o faith_n but_o if_o by_o true_a church_n we_o understand_v a_o number_n of_o believer_n small_a or_o great_a teach_v and_o profess_v right_a faith_n in_o all_o substantial_a and_o capital_a point_n and_o willing_a to_o embrace_v and_o teach_v all_o other_o divine_a verity_n when_o the_o same_o be_v make_v know_v unto_o they_o than_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o there_o be_v a_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n always_o in_o the_o world_n and_o this_o kind_n of_o believer_n do_v either_o teach_v and_o profess_v their_o faith_n and_o religion_n in_o congregation_n apart_o or_o in_o the_o external_a fellowship_n and_o common_a society_n of_o corrupt_a believer_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o wicked_a king_n and_o priest_n and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o pharisee_n the_o open_a and_o public_a ministry_n of_o priest_n be_v corrupt_a in_o those_o day_n yet_o god_n have_v a_o remnant_n of_o people_n and_o small_a church_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o this_o blindness_n isaiah_n 1.9_o in_o the_o other_o part_n of_o this_o section_n the_o jesuite_n produce_v a_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v always_o a_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o world_n the_o sum_n of_o his_o argument_n be_v christ_n never_o leave_v the_o world_n destitute_a of_o the_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o salvation_n and_o people_n can_v have_v the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n but_o from_o the_o true_a church_n and_o by_o the_o tradition_n thereof_o by_o which_o they_o receive_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n to_o guide_v they_o in_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n answer_n it_o be_v lose_v labour_n to_o spend_v time_n in_o prove_v against_o we_o that_o there_o be_v always_o in_o the_o world_n a_o true_a church_n ponimus_fw-la for_o we_o have_v ever_o acknowledge_v this_o the_o thing_n that_o we_o deny_v be_v that_o although_o there_o be_v always_o in_o the_o world_n a_o church_n the_o 〈◊〉_d member_n whereof_o be_v free_a from_o damnable_a and_o 〈◊〉_d error_n yet_o there_o be_v not_o always_o a_o true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n who_o command_a prelate_n be_v free_a from_o all_o error_n or_o 〈◊〉_d part_n of_o it_o from_o malicious_a error_n second_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o christ_n do_v not_o according_a to_o his_o antecedent_n will_v leave_v the_o world_n destitute_a of_o the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n math._n 23.37_o 1._o timoth._n 2.4_o 2._o pet._n 3.9_o but_o notwithstanding_o this_o will_n of_o christ_n 17.18_o many_o people_n may_v be_v actual_o destitute_a of_o the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n by_o the_o negligence_n of_o preacher_n habete_fw-la and_o through_o their_o own_o negligence_n or_o malice_n contemn_v or_o repel_v the_o say_a mean_n when_o they_o be_v offer_v unto_o they_o act_v 13.46_o three_o a_o corrupt_a visible_a church_n may_v true_o deliver_v some_o part_n of_o sacred_a truth_n and_o among_o other_o verity_n it_o may_v deliver_v the_o apostle_n tradition_n touch_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o also_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n contain_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n this_o appear_v by_o the_o church_n of_o the_o nestorian_n at_o this_o day_n and_o also_o of_o old_a by_o the_o jewish_a church_n which_o at_o such_o time_n as_o it_o be_v idolatrous_a and_o unsound_a preserve_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o by_o transcribe_v and_o read_v deliver_v the_o whole_a text_n thereof_o true_o rom._n 3.2_o and_o act_v 15.21_o four_o if_o we_o shall_v grant_v which_o be_v false_a as_o appear_z by_o the_o greek_a church_n that_o there_o be_v in_o some_o age_n past_a no_o other_o church_n but_o the_o roman_a and_o the_o adhere_v thereof_o and_o affirm_v withal_o that_o the_o chief_a prelate_n thereof_o and_o their_o faction_n maintain_v sundry_a erroneous_a and_o superstitious_a doctrine_n yet_o because_o all_o doctor_n and_o people_n live_v within_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o that_o church_n be_v not_o equal_o poison_v and_o surprise_v with_o error_n alij_fw-la but_o many_o among_o they_o firm_o believe_v all_o fundamental_a 〈◊〉_d be_v 〈◊〉_d by_o adieu_n out_o and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o some_o other_o point_n it_o follow_v not_o that_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v destitute_n of_o all_o mean_n of_o salvation_n for_o these_o founder_n member_n line_v in_o the_o visible_a roman_a church_n may_v deliver_v the_o main_a and_o capital_a article_n of_o christianity_n and_o their_o ignorance_n and_o error_n in_o other_o matter_n be_v in_o those_o day_n pardonable_a because_o they_o offend_v in_o simplicity_n and_o be_v 〈◊〉_d unaware_o jesuit_fw-la second_o this_o church_n must_v be_v always_o visible_a and_o conspicious_a for_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n must_v ever_o be_v famous_a glorious_a and_o notorious_o know_v in_o the_o world_n that_o a_o christian_n may_v say_v with_o s._n augustine_n i_o believe_v nothing_o but_o the_o consent_n of_o nation_n and_o country_n and_o most_o celebrious_a fame_n now_o if_o the_o church_n be_v hide_v in_o secret_a invisible_a in_o any_o age_n than_o her_o tradition_n can_v not_o be_v doctrine_n ever_o illustrious_o know_v but_o rather_o obscure_a hide_a apochriphall_a ergo_fw-la the_o church_n the_o mistress_n pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o truth_n must_v be_v always_o visible_a and_o conspicuous_a which_o if_o need_n be_v may_v be_v further_o prove_v most_o evident_o answer_n the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o popish_a tenet_n be_v say_v to_o be_v visible_a because_o it_o always_o have_v such_o a_o outward_a form_n and_o appearance_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n as_o that_o people_n be_v able_a by_o sense_n or_o common_a reason_n to_o know_v the_o same_o material_o and_o to_o distinguish_v it_o from_o other_o society_n of_o infidel_n and_o heretic_n sensu_fw-la and_o by_o the_o church_n in_o this_o question_n they_o understand_v a_o company_n of_o believer_n profess_v christian_n faith_n without_o error_n submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o their_o universal_a visible_a head_n etc._n and_o they_o affirm_v concern_v the_o say_a church_n that_o it_o may_v at_o all_o time_n be_v sensible_o know_v and_o discern_v demonstrari_fw-la and_o that_o the_o place_n of_o abode_n and_o the_o principal_a member_n thereof_o be_v open_o know_v and_o the_o external_a action_n of_o the_o same_o to_o wit_n preach_v pray_v administration_n of_o 〈◊〉_d may_v be_v always_o hear_v and_o see_v and_o that_o the_o same_o be_v perpetual_o sensible_a and_o 〈◊〉_d like_v unto_o earthly_a kingdom_n and_o common_a weal_n demonstrari_fw-la some_o few_o of_o they_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o the_o same_o for_o some_o short_a season_n to_o loose_a part_n of_o the_o external_a amplitude_n and_o glory_n and_o to_o be_v overshadow_a with_o cloud_n and_o storm_n of_o heresy_n schism_n and_o persecution_n 30._o but_o yet_o they_o all_o 〈◊〉_d that_o even_o in_o those_o tempestuous_a season_n it_o be_v conspicuous_a to_o the_o world_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o principal_a member_n 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o the_o common_a and_o ordinary_a condition_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v to_o be_v ample_o famous_o and_o in_o a_o glorious_a manner_n visible_a illustrior_fw-la but_o our_o tenet_n be_v first_o that_o the_o true_a church_n abide_v oftentimes_o in_o persecution_n either_o of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o external_a enemy_n or_o of_o domestical_a foe_n 33._o and_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n by_o either_o of_o 〈◊〉_d enemy_n it_o may_v be_v repute_v a_o false_a church_n or_o impious_a sect_n by_o the_o multitude_n 15._o and_o consequent_o be_v unknown_a to_o the_o wicked_a world_n under_o the_o notion_n of_o holy_a and_o true_a and_o in_o such_o
satan_n may_v be_v infidel_n etc._n at_o least_o a_o great_a part_n of_o they_o as_o well_o as_o christian_n and_o although_o satan_n possess_v &_o deceive_v they_o before_o yet_o now_o when_o he_o be_v loose_v he_o do_v in_o a_o new_a manner_n and_o by_o a_o great_a efficacy_n of_o error_n deceive_v they_o 21._o 2._o the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v persecute_v universal_o by_o multitude_n of_o enemy_n disperse_v every_o where_o and_o yet_o remain_v itself_o in_o one_o or_o in_o few_o place_n and_o it_o may_v also_o be_v persecute_v when_o it_o profess_v and_o exercise_v religion_n in_o secret_a apoc._n 12.14_o 15._o 3._o many_o learned_a papist_n affirm_v that_o in_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n true_a believer_n shall_v cease_v to_o be_v in_o many_o place_n and_o the_o number_n of_o orthodoxal_a people_n shall_v be_v small_a and_o the_o same_o shall_v profess_v their_o faith_n in_o secret_a august_n triumph_n substractis_n sum_n d._n eccles._n pot_n q._n 21._o be_v 4._o at_o that_o time_n particular_a church_n diffuse_v far_o and_o near_o over_o the_o world_n shall_v withdraw_v themselwe_n from_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o roman_a pope_n and_o few_o shall_v obey_v he_o and_o the_o pope_n himself_o at_o that_o time_n shall_v with_o a_o few_o keep_v himself_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d other_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o his_o 〈◊〉_d the_o like_a be_v affirm_v by_o occam_n 30._o 〈◊〉_d 30._o 〈◊〉_d 8._o 〈◊〉_d 9.12_o and_o barradias_n etc._n now_o this_o former_a affertion_n which_o be_v the_o common_a tener_n of_o papist_n agree_v not_o with_o the_o speech_n of_o our_o adversary_n when_o he_o say_v that_o in_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v every_o where_o visible_a and_o conspicuous_a even_o to_o the_o wicked_a and_o he_o must_v revoke_v his_o bold_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o his_o first_o word_n a_o truth_n so_o clear_a that_o it_o may_v evident_o be_v prove_v etc._n etc._n jesuit_fw-la the_o reason_n of_o this_o perpetual_a visible_a universality_n be_v because_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v as_o i_o have_v prove_v the_o sole_a ordinary_a mean_n to_o ground_n faith_n on_o for_o substantial_a point_n wherefore_o this_o tradition_n must_v be_v so_o deliver_v as_o that_o it_o may_v be_v know_v to_o all_o man_n see_v god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n without_o any_o exception_n of_o nation_n to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o truth_n 1._o timothy_n 2._o 4._o but_o if_o the_o church_n be_v not_o still_o so_o diffuse_v in_o the_o world_n that_o all_o know_a nation_n may_v take_v notice_n of_o she_o all_o man_n can_v not_o be_v save_v answer_n although_o the_o teach_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o first_o introduction_n to_o lead_v people_n unto_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o ground_n of_o salvation_n and_o the_o ordinary_a mean_n whereby_o they_o receive_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o rule_v of_o faith_n contain_v in_o the_o same_o which_o be_v all_o you_o have_v or_o can_v prove_v doctrinae_fw-la yet_o hence_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v visible_o universal_a in_o all_o place_n of_o the_o world_n first_o you_o be_v reprove_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o indian_n and_o people_n inhabit_v the_o new_a find_v world_n who_o be_v god_n creature_n and_o reasonable_a man_n form_v 〈◊〉_d his_o image_n capable_a of_o grace_n and_o 〈◊〉_d as_o well_o as_o other_o man_n and_o include_v within_o the_o latitude_n of_o 〈◊〉_d promise_n 〈◊〉_d math._n 28.19_o marc._n 16.15_o call_n 2.28_o call_n 3.11_o and_o the_o apostle_n speech_n 1._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 4._o god_n will_v 〈◊〉_d all_o man_n to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d &c_n &c_n 〈◊〉_d they_o as_o well_o as_o other_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o true_a church_n who_o tradition_n according_a to_o your_o position_n be_v the_o sole_a ordinary_a mean_n to_o ground_n faith_n on_o be_v not_o for_o many_o age_n either_o actual_o or_o moray_o visible_a universal_a or_o any_o way_n make_v know_v to_o they_o it_o seem_v by_o the_o conclusion_n of_o your_o argument_n wherein_o you_o insert_v these_o word_n that_o all_o know_a nation_n etc._n etc._n that_o you_o observe_v this_o but_o you_o be_v no_o way_n able_a to_o clear_v the_o difficulty_n for_o if_o because_o s._n paul_n say_v god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v and_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n the_o true_a church_n must_v in_o all_o age_n be_v visible_o universal_a than_o the_o same_o must_v be_v so_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o nation_n inhabit_v the_o new_a find_v world_n because_o s._n paul_n word_n god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v and_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v universal_a according_a to_o your_o exposition_n and_o must_v be_v understand_v without_o limitation_n or_o respect_n of_o person_n second_o when_o s._n paul_n say_v god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v etc._n etc._n he_o 〈◊〉_d according_a to_o the_o antecedent_n will_v of_o god_n as_o learned_a papist_n common_o maintain_v but_o capreolus_n this_o antecedent_n will_v according_a to_o some_o learned_a papist_n be_v no_o formal_a will_n in_o god_n but_o be_v only_o improper_o and_o metaphorical_o so_o call_v 6._o and_o according_a to_o other_o which_o say_v it_o be_v a_o formal_a will_n the_o same_o produce_v not_o universal_o either_o grace_n of_o outward_a call_n to_o salvation_n or_o inward_a grace_n in_o they_o that_o be_v external_o call_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v inconsequent_a to_o argue_v from_o this_o manner_n of_o god_n will_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v in_o all_o age_n visible_o universal_a 1._o aquinas_n and_o other_o say_v that_o the_o antecedent_n will_v of_o god_n be_v only_o a_o velleitie_n velleitas_fw-la or_o wish_v that_o the_o thing_n may_v be_v a_o complacency_n in_o a_o thing_n consider_v abstractive_o and_o without_o other_o circumstance_n 2._o and_o that_o upon_o it_o alone_o the_o salvation_n of_o no_o man_n follow_v 2._o the_o same_o be_v general_a in_o respect_n of_o all_o 〈◊〉_d and_o every_o singular_a and_o individual_a person_n and_o god_n by_o his_o antecedent_n will_n wish_v the_o salvation_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o experience_n that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d will_n all_o 〈◊〉_d and_o singular_a person_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o that_o whole_a country_n and_o nation_n for_o 〈◊〉_d age_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o same_o etc._n and_o some_o country_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n soon_o and_o other_o latter_a some_o have_v be_v 〈◊〉_d in_o one_o age_n and_o some_o in_o another_o 4._o god_n antecedent_n will_n be_v always_o the_o same_o and_o 〈◊〉_d to_o it_o he_o 〈◊〉_d the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n ezek._n 33.11_o now_o from_o the_o former_a position_n it_o follow_v that_o s._n paul_n word_n 1._o tim._n 2.4_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v etc._n etc._n do_v not_o 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v visible_o universal_a in_o all_o age_n since_o the_o ascension_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o if_o the_o antecedent_n will_v of_o god_n of_o which_o s._n paul_n speak_v 1._o tim._n 2.4_o be_v only_o a_o velleitie_n and_o complacency_n about_o man_n salvation_n abstractive_o consider_v deo_fw-la and_o if_o it_o respect_v singular_a and_o individual_a person_n as_o well_o as_o whole_a nation_n and_o notwithstanding_o the_o same_o many_o singular_a person_n and_o whole_a nation_n have_v be_v destitute_a and_o that_o for_o a_o long_a space_n of_o time_n of_o all_o mean_n of_o conversion_n and_o outward_a call_n to_o christianity_n and_o if_o the_o same_o will_n for_o some_o large_a tract_n of_o time_n produce_v no_o external_a effect_n sufficient_a to_o convert_v infidel_n esse_fw-la than_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o true_a church_n which_o be_v the_o only_a ordinary_a teacher_n of_o save_v verity_n be_v not_o visible_o universal_a in_o all_o place_n of_o the_o world_n in_o every_o age_n the_o minor_a be_v prove_v from_o the_o four_o proposition_n former_o deliver_v the_o sequel_n be_v evident_a by_o the_o exposition_n which_o our_o adversary_n deliver_v of_o s._n paul_n text_n understand_v the_o same_o of_o the_o antecedent_n will_v of_o god_n and_o from_o the_o position_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d deliver_v in_o this_o section_n which_o be_v that_o the_o tradition_n and_o preach_v of_o the_o true_a visible_a church_n be_v the_o sole_a ordinary_a mean_n to_o lead_v people_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o save_v truth_n for_o if_o the_o antecedent_n will_v of_o god_n be_v not_o a_o certain_a and_o infallible_a cause_n that_o all_o people_n shall_v at_o all_o time_n have_v the_o preach_n of_o save_v verity_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o true_a visible_a
must_v be_v doctrine_n unchanged_a come_n from_o the_o apostle_n answer_n this_o proposition_n may_v hold_v in_o prime_n and_o essential_a article_n of_o doctrine_n but_o not_o general_o in_o all_o doctrine_n and_o some_o learned_a papist_n hold_v that_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o one_o age_n to_o err_v or_o be_v deceive_v by_o a_o blameless_a and_o invincible_a ignorance_n in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n the_o express_a knowledge_n whereof_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n 4._o jesuit_fw-la but_o it_o be_v most_o clear_a and_o confess_v by_o the_o protestant_n other_o who_o testimony_n plentiful_a in_o this_o behalf_n if_o need_v require_v shall_v be_v bring_v first_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o protestant_n refuse_v have_v be_v universal_o receive_v for_o many_o age_n a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o at_o least_o ever_o since_o boniface_n the_o three_o answer_n it_o be_v neither_o clear_a in_o itself_o nor_o yet_o confess_v by_o protestant_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o protestant_n refuse_v have_v be_v universal_o receive_v for_o 1000_o year_n at_o least_o etc._n etc._n the_o article_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o of_o purgatory_n adoration_n of_o image_n forbid_v marry_v priest_n to_o live_v with_o their_o wife_n be_v ever_o oppose_v and_o reject_v by_o the_o greek_a church_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trident_n council_n concern_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o pre-eminence_n of_o the_o vulgar_a translation_n before_o the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a text_n be_v not_o universal_o 〈◊〉_d for_o a_o thousand_o year_n the_o temporal_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o merit_n of_o condignity_n public_a service_n in_o a_o unknown_a language_n jubilee_n and_o pope_n pardon_n communion_n in_o one_o kind_n transubstantiation_n blessing_n or_o baptise_v of_o bell_n etc._n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o general_o receive_v in_o the_o church_n universal_a for_o a_o thousand_o year_n at_o least_o and_o a_o great_a number_n of_o believer_n which_o in_o this_o west_n part_n of_o the_o world_n have_v always_o deny_v and_o resist_v these_o article_n and_o among_o other_o opponent_n there_o be_v a_o people_n call_v waldenses_n leonistae_n pauperes_fw-la de_fw-fr lugduno_n etc._n etc._n many_o in_o number_n and_o large_o diffuse_v through_o diverse_a country_n who_o deny_v the_o foresay_a popish_a article_n and_o who_o doctrine_n in_o the_o most_o point_n be_v consonant_a to_o that_o which_o reform_a church_n do_v now_o profess_v reinerius_n defenderunt_fw-la a_o inquisitor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n live_v about_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o fifty_o four_o in_o a_o book_n print_v at_o ingolstade_n write_v in_o this_o manner_n of_o the_o waldense_n which_o he_o call_v leonist_n among_o all_o sect_n which_o be_v or_o have_v former_o be_v none_o be_v more_o pernicious_a to_o the_o church_n than_o that_o of_o the_o leonist_n first_o because_o it_o continue_v long_o than_o any_o other_o for_o some_o say_v it_o have_v last_v ever_o since_o pope_n silvester_n other_o say_v ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n second_o because_o no_o sect_n be_v more_o general_a than_o this_o for_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o country_n in_o which_o it_o be_v not_o find_v three_o whereas_o other_o sect_n deter_v man_n with_o their_o horrible_a blasphemy_n this_o sect_n of_o the_o leonist_n make_v a_o great_a show_n of_o godliness_n because_o they_o live_v righteous_o before_o man_n and_o believe_v all_o thing_n right_o touch_v god_n and_o concern_v all_o other_o article_n of_o the_o cee_v only_o they_o blaspheme_v the_o roman_a church_n and_o clergy_n in_o which_o thing_n the_o laity_n be_v forward_o to_o give_v credit_n unto_o they_o jesuit_fw-la second_o that_o protestant_n can_v tell_v the_o time_n when_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n begin_v to_o change_v and_o deviate_v from_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n deliver_v by_o succession_n ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a church_n never_o change_v she_o faith_n answer_n if_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a yet_o it_o follow_v not_o ergo_fw-la the_o same_o roman_a church_n never_o change_v her_o faith_n for_o although_o we_o can_v tell_v the_o time_n when_o the_o progenitor_n of_o abraham_n first_o begin_v to_o change_v and_o deviate_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o noah_n and_o sem_fw-mi yet_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o have_v change_v their_o religion_n 1._o josh._n 24._o 2._o and_o be_v not_o the_o sodomite_n transgressor_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n because_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o their_o transgression_n can_v be_v know_v how_o many_o wicked_a custom_n have_v be_v common_a in_o the_o world_n who_o author_n and_o first_o beginner_n be_v unknown_a to_o posterity_n the_o time_n be_v not_o know_v when_o the_o late_a jewish_a church_n do_v first_o change_n and_o corrupt_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n and_o bring_v in_o the_o tradition_n condemn_v by_o our_o saviour_n and_o yet_o they_o have_v corrupt_v and_o change_v the_o same_o matth._n 5._o &_o 6._o &_o 7._o &_o 15._o &_o 19_o &_o 23._o if_o a_o tenant_n have_v by_o himself_o and_o his_o predecessor_n long_o hold_v a_o house_n which_o be_v now_o in_o decay_n and_o ready_a to_o drop_v down_o the_o landlord_n by_o this_o law_n of_o the_o jesuit_n ergo_fw-la shall_v never_o compel_v the_o tenant_n to_o make_v reparation_n unless_o he_o be_v able_a to_o demonstrate_v to_o the_o tenant_n in_o what_o year_n and_o month_n every_o wall_n and_o rafter_n begin_v to_o decay_v a_o physician_n shall_v not_o purge_v a_o malignant_a humour_n out_o of_o a_o disease_a body_n unless_o he_o or_o his_o patient_n be_v able_a to_o name_v the_o time_n and_o manner_n of_o that_o misdiet_n which_o breed_v the_o first_o seed_n of_o this_o distemper_n jesuit_fw-la so_o that_o her_o doctrine_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o apostolical_a suppose_v the_o mayor_n of_o this_o argument_n be_v true_a that_o doctrine_n universal_o receive_v who_o beginning_n be_v not_o know_v be_v to_o be_v believe_v as_o apostolical_a which_o be_v a_o 352._o principle_n set_v down_o by_o saint_n augustine_n allow_v by_o doctor_n whitgift_n late_a archbishop_n of_o canturburie_n who_o in_o his_o book_n write_v by_o public_a authority_n against_o puritan_n cite_v diverse_a protestant_n as_o concur_v in_o opinion_n with_o he_o sai_z whatsoever_o opinion_n be_v not_o know_v to_o have_v begin_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o same_o be_v not_o new_a or_o secundarie_n but_o receive_v their_o original_n from_o the_o apostle_n but_o because_o this_o principle_n of_o christian_a divinity_n bring_v in_o as_o m._n cartwright_n speak_v all_o popery_n 352._o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o man_n i_o will_v further_o demonstrate_v the_o same_o though_o of_o itself_o clear_a enough_o answer_n if_o the_o mayor_n of_o this_o argument_n be_v grant_v to_o wit_n doctrine_n universal_o receive_v who_o beginning_n be_v not_o know_v be_v to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d as_o apostolical_a yet_o the_o inference_n be_v false_a because_o the_o roman_a doctrine_n oppose_v by_o we_o be_v never_o universal_o receive_v but_o by_o many_o either_o not_o hear_v of_o or_o reject_v and_o contradict_v neither_o be_v the_o former_a principle_n sufficient_o prove_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n first_o because_o he_o speak_v in_o all_o the_o place_n object_v of_o custom_n etc._n and_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o practice_n the_o right_a and_o doctrine_n whereof_o be_v find_v in_o holy_a scripture_n second_o the_o jesuit_n convey_v into_o his_o proposition_n certain_a word_n to_o wit_n doctrine_n universal_o receive_v etc._n etc._n which_o be_v not_o find_v in_o s._n augustine_n and_o this_o father_n do_v never_o allow_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n shall_v believe_v any_o thing_n as_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o contain_v express_o or_o derivative_o in_o holy_a scripture_n suadentur_fw-la and_o in_o the_o same_o book_n out_o of_o which_o these_o objection_n be_v collect_v he_o confute_v rebaptise_v by_o scripture_n and_o confirm_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o infant_n baptism_n by_o scripture_n donatist_n so_o that_o his_o meaning_n be_v when_o matter_n be_v in_o common_a use_n and_o practice_v be_v question_v the_o right_a and_o lawfulness_n have_v warrant_n from_o the_o scripture_n although_o no_o especial_a example_n be_v find_v in_o the_o write_a book_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o such_o practice_n yet_o the_o general_a custom_n and_o use_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n in_o all_o age_n argue_v that_o such_o practise_v receive_v it_o beginning_n from_o the_o apostle_n for_o example_n that_o the_o apostle_n baptize_v infant_n be_v not_o particular_o report_v in_o their_o write_n but_o sufficient_a ground_n be_v find_v in_o they_o to_o prove_v the_o necessity_n and_o to_o warrant_v the_o practice_n thereof_o in_o this_o and_o in_o all_o other_o the_o like_a case_n quod_fw-la universa_fw-la tenet_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la nec_fw-la
rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n plenitudine_fw-la with_o he_o john_n 20._o 23._o eph._n 2.20_o apoc._n 21.14_o matth._n 28.19_o three_o to_o be_v a_o ministerial_a rock_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v the_o sole_a monarch_n of_o the_o church_n because_o st._n peter_n may_v be_v such_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o preach_a and_o doctrine_n as_o the_o other_o apostle_n be_v and_o not_o in_o respect_n of_o monarchical_a dominion_n hereupon_o turrecremate_n in_o his_o sum._n d._n eccles._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 11._o say_v non_fw-la argumentati_fw-la sumus_fw-la petrum_fw-la primatum_fw-la habuisse_fw-la quia_fw-la dictus_fw-la fuit_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la aut_fw-la petra_n ecclesiae_fw-la sed_fw-la quia_fw-la singulariter_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o argue_v not_o saint_n peter_n have_v the_o primacy_n because_o he_o be_v call_v the_o foundation_n or_o rock_n of_o the_o church_n but_o because_o he_o be_v in_o a_o singular_a manner_n so_o call_v but_o if_o the_o name_n of_o rock_n argue_v not_o st._n peter_n supremacy_n the_o singular_a apply_v thereof_o in_o one_o text_n of_o scripture_n will_v not_o do_v it_o both_o because_o the_o speak_n to_o he_o in_o particular_a be_v only_o a_o circumstance_n and_o relation_n of_o a_o matter_n grant_v by_o the_o word_n of_o rock_n and_o key_n but_o no_o addition_n of_o any_o other_o essential_a gift_n and_o also_o because_o the_o same_o title_n in_o term_n equivalent_a be_v elsewhere_o make_v common_a to_o other_o apostle_n presbiteris_fw-la the_o jesuit_n add_v that_o we_o deny_v the_o primacy_n of_o peter_n successor_n and_o that_o this_o successor_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n lay_v by_o christ_n and_o necessary_a for_o the_o perpetual_a government_n of_o the_o same_o i_o answer_v first_o st._n peter_n in_o one_o respect_n to_o wit_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o apostolical_a function_n have_v no_o successor_n for_o the_o office_n of_o apostle_n be_v extraordinary_a appoint_v by_o christ_n for_o the_o first_o plant_n of_o faith_n and_o consequent_o it_o cease_v with_o the_o apostle_n 12._o immediate_a calling_n prophetical_a inspiration_n the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n and_o language_n authority_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o all_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n thereof_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o holy_a apostle_n and_o if_o none_o succeed_v they_o in_o these_o gift_n and_o prerogative_n than_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o apostleship_n habuisset_fw-la they_o have_v no_o successor_n second_o in_o respect_n of_o ordinary_a ministry_n and_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o power_n and_o order_n of_o jurisdiction_n st._n peter_n have_v successor_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o wit_n all_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n omnes_fw-la teach_v either_o where_o he_o plant_v church_n or_o in_o any_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n the_o same_o faith_n and_o religion_n which_o himself_o and_o his_o fellow_n apostle_n do_v etc._n three_o that_o st._n peter_n have_v a_o special_a successor_n differ_v in_o kind_n from_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o which_o be_v to_o be_v for_o ever_o a_o visible_a head_n and_o monarch_n over_o the_o universal_a church_n from_o who_o all_o ecclesiastical_a power_n be_v derive_v and_o to_o who_o sentence_n in_o thing_n divine_a every_o chrstian_n must_v submit_v himself_o and_o that_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v the_o man_n be_v deliver_v as_o a_o prime_a article_n of_o christian_a faith_n by_o papal_o subiacet_fw-la but_o it_o be_v neither_o confirm_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 3._o nor_o by_o any_o divine_a revelation_n neither_o be_v the_o same_o deliver_v in_o the_o holy_a apostle_n creed_n or_o by_o any_o ancient_a general_a council_n or_o by_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o primative_a father_n and_o sundry_a romist_n themselves_o have_v make_v question_n of_o it_o etc._n and_o late_a pontifician_n do_v with_o so_o many_o subtle_a sleight_n and_o invention_n propugne_v it_o that_o all_o intelligent_a and_o impartial_a man_n may_v plain_o discern_v that_o this_o doctrine_n of_o papal_a supremacy_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o sand_n for_o if_o the_o roman_a bishop_n have_v be_v appoint_v and_o establish_v the_o perpetual_a successor_n of_o saint_n peter_n in_o manner_n before_o mention_v either_o our_o saviour_n himself_o will_v immediate_o expresl_o and_o manifest_o have_v reveal_v the_o same_o to_o his_o church_n or_o the_o holy_a apostle_n will_v have_v take_v notice_n thereof_o and_o declare_v the_o same_o to_o other_o also_o saint_n peter_n must_v have_v carry_v himself_o as_o a_o monarch_n among_o the_o other_o apostle_n and_o exercise_v the_o action_n of_o sovereignty_n in_o the_o visible_a church_n but_o we_o find_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n no_o supereminent_a jurisdiction_n or_o monarchical_a action_n exercise_v by_o he_o 〈◊〉_d no_o vassalage_n and_o subjection_n yield_v he_o by_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o if_o he_o must_v have_v have_v a_o successor_n in_o his_o monarchy_n the_o apostle_n suruive_v he_o tempora_fw-la shall_v rather_o have_v be_v his_o successor_n than_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n of_o one_o diocese_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n also_o together_o with_o so_o eminent_a authority_n will_v have_v confer_v upon_o 〈◊〉_d successor_n extraordinary_a grace_n of_o learning_n wisdom_n holiness_n etc._n etc._n necessary_a for_o so_o high_a a_o call_n also_o it_o be_v not_o probable_a that_o eusebius_n and_o other_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a historian_n will_v altogether_o have_v be_v silent_a of_o this_o monarchical_a authority_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n neither_o will_v any_o orthodox_n father_n or_o general_a council_n have_v confine_v the_o roman_a pontife_n to_o equal_a bound_n with_o other_o patriarch_n but_o the_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a story_n be_v absolute_o silent_a of_o such_o a_o swell_a etc._n pre-eminence_n as_o modern_a papal_o claim_v and_o the_o father_n and_o counsel_n contest_v the_o same_o pope_n stephan_n be_v slight_v by_o st._n cyprian_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n meam_fw-la when_o he_o enterpose_v in_o their_o affair_n and_o pope_n victor_n by_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n 26._o the_o ecumenical_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n existentem_fw-la equal_v the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n gregory_n the_o great_a 34._o himself_o give_v the_o papacy_n a_o deadly_a blow_n and_o a_o great_a part_n of_o christianity_n papae_fw-la have_v ever_o to_o this_o day_n oppose_v the_o papal_a primacy_n therefore_o it_o be_v most_o improbable_a that_o this_o doctrine_n shall_v be_v fundamental_a verity_n which_o have_v no_o 〈◊〉_d or_o infallible_a ground_n in_o divine_a revelation_n want_v also_o the_o suffrage_n of_o all_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a testimony_n jesuit_fw-la fourthly_o their_o deny_v the_o foundation_n of_o true_a 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v one_o true_a catholic_a christian_n faith_n about_o reveal_v mystery_n bring_v in_o a_o fantastical_a faith_n pretend_v that_o every_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o believe_v himself_o to_o be_v just_a or_o one_o of_o god_n elect._n answer_n you_o ought_v first_o to_o have_v weigh_v our_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o definition_n of_o faith_n and_o have_v compare_v the_o same_o with_o the_o tenet_n of_o sundry_a of_o your_o own_o doctor_n before_o you_o have_v accuse_v we_o of_o fundamental_a error_n about_o the_o same_o first_o we_o maintain_v that_o true_a christian_a catholic_a faith_n be_v a_o 〈◊〉_d and_o foundation_n to_o wit_n on_o man_n part_n of_o justification_n 22._o heb._n 11.6_o rom._n 1.17_o jud._n v_o 20._o second_o we_o deny_v that_o every_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o only_o believe_v himself_o to_o be_v just_a for_o he_o must_v be_v true_o just_a before_o he_o can_v or_o aught_o to_o believe_v himself_o to_o be_v so_o sequitur_fw-la the_o promise_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v conditional_a contingit_fw-la esa._n 1.16_o 17_o 18._o ezec._n 18._o 21._o pro._n 28._o 13._o math._n 6.14_o 15._o john_n 15._o 10._o &_o 16_o 27._o heb._n 5.9_o and_o the_o same_o become_v not_o absolute_a until_o the_o condition_n be_v fulfil_v either_o actual_o or_o in_o desire_n and_o preparation_n of_o mind_n and_o the_o full_a assurance_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n regeneratos_fw-la succee_v repentance_n faith_n obedience_n and_o mortification_n 1._o john_n 3.19_o 20_o 21_o 22._o three_o we_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v a_o action_n of_o christian_a faith_n praevious_a or_o fundamental_a to_o justification_n for_o a_o man_n to_o believe_v himself_o to_o be_v one_o of_o god_n elect_v and_o admit_v that_o one_o do_v not_o attain_v the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n but_o of_o hope_n only_o that_o he_o be_v elect_v elatio_fw-la if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o impediment_n find_v in_o he_o beside_o this_o we_o make_v no_o question_n but_o such_o a_o person_n may_v be_v 〈◊〉_d wherein_o then_o lie_v the_o fundamental_a error_n concern_v faith_n and_o justification_n wherewith_o we_o be_v reproach_v if_o it_o be_v answer_v that_o
apostle_n creed_n be_v that_o society_n of_o believer_n against_o which_o hell_n gate_n prevail_v not_o final_o either_o by_o heresy_n or_o mortal_a sin_n but_o hell_n gate_n prevail_v against_o pope_n and_o popish_a prelate_n by_o mortal_a sin_n so_o far_o as_o that_o they_o descend_v into_o the_o infernal_a lake_n therefore_o the_o roman_a hierarchicall_a church_n consist_v principal_o of_o pope_n and_o popish_a prelate_n be_v not_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n in_o the_o creed_n for_o that_o church_n have_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o life_n eternal_a and_o pass_v not_o into_o hell_n joh._n 10.28_o august_n d._n doctr._n christ._n li._n 3._o ca._n 32._o jesuit_fw-la the_o church_n whereof_o christ_n say_v math._n 28.20_o i_o be_o always_o with_o you_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o creed_n or_o the_o church_n which_o to_o forsake_v be_v damnable_a for_o the_o church_n wherewith_o christ_n still_o abide_v not_o according_a to_o corporal_a and_o visible_a presence_n but_o by_o his_o spirit_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n whereof_o he_o be_v head_n into_o which_o he_o infuse_v the_o life_n of_o grace_n and_o consequent_o he_o that_o forsake_v this_o church_n forsake_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o head_n thereof_o and_o can_v live_v by_o his_o spirit_n but_o be_v in_o a_o dead_a and_o damnable_a estate_n as_o a_o member_n cut_v off_o and_o separate_v 16._o from_o a_o live_a body_n as_o s._n augustine_n long_o ago_o note_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n whereof_o he_o be_v head_n out_o of_o this_o body_n the_o holy_a ghost_n quicken_v no_o man_n now_o the_o church_n whereof_o christ_n say_v i_o be_o always_o with_o you_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o the_o church_n invisible_a of_o only_a the_o elect_n but_o a_o visible_a church_n derive_v by_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o he_o that_o forsake_v this_o church_n derive_v by_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n forsake_v the_o church_n of_o the_o creed_n the_o catholic_a church_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o put_v himself_o into_o a_o dead_a and_o damnable_a state_n and_o may_v have_v all_o thing_n beside_o salvation_n and_o eternal_a life_n as_o father_n affirm_v who_o testimony_n in_o this_o 23._o behalf_n be_v notable_a and_o famous_o know_v whereunto_o d._n field_n yield_v acknowledge_v one_o holy_a catholic_a church_n in_o which_o only_o the_o light_n of_o heavenly_a truth_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v where_o only_a grace_n mercie_n remission_n of_o sin_n and_o hope_v of_o eternal_a happiness_n be_v find_v answer_n the_o church_n whereof_o christ_n say_v math._n 28.20_o i_o be_o always_o with_o you_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n &_o of_o pastor_n and_o believer_n succeed_v they_o in_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o religion_n and_o this_o be_v a_o principal_a part_n for_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o general_n contain_v all_o faithful_a and_o just_a person_n from_o abel_n 10._o etc._n etc._n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o creed_n second_o some_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o the_o creed_n be_v always_o visible_a in_o the_o world_n sometime_o in_o a_o ample_a sometime_o in_o a_o small_a number_n of_o professor_n also_o the_o visibilitie_n thereof_o be_v at_o sometime_o illustrious_a and_o notorious_a and_o at_o other_o time_n it_o be_v obscure_a according_a to_o the_o state_n of_o persecution_n possunt_fw-la three_o to_o forsake_v the_o true_a church_n in_o the_o main_a and_o primarie_a article_n of_o faith_n or_o by_o any_o wilful_a infidelity_n be_v damnable_a and_o all_o people_n which_o desire_n salvation_n must_v actual_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a or_o voto_fw-la in_o case_n of_o necessity_n conjoin_v themselves_o to_o some_o part_n of_o the_o orthodoxal_a catholic_a church_n 7.50.61_o but_o our_o saviour_n promise_v to_o no_o one_o visible_a sea_n or_o church_n continue_v after_o the_o apostle_n by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n absolute_a immunity_n from_o all_o error_n and_o infallibility_n of_o verity_n but_o only_o presentiall_a assistance_n and_o protection_n of_o grace_n sufficient_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o people_n upon_o condition_n to_o wit_n when_o the_o say_v pastor_n teach_v and_o observe_v that_o which_o he_o command_v and_o continue_v in_o the_o right_a use_n of_o those_o mean_n which_o he_o have_v depose_v among_o they_o joh._n 8.31_o 32._o rom._n 11._o 22._o read_v before_o in_o this_o treatise_n pag._n 94.99_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n augustine_n 16._o object_v by_o the_o adversary_n which_o be_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n whereof_o he_o be_v head_n and_o that_o out_o of_o this_o body_n the_o holy_a ghost_n quicken_v no_o man_n make_v altogether_o against_o himself_o for_o none_o be_v vital_a member_n of_o christ_n mystical_a body_n but_o just_a and_o holy_a person_n and_o it_o be_v the_o same_o father_n doctrine_n 32._o impij_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la revera_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la wicked_a person_n be_v not_o in_o deed_n and_o verity_n christ_n body_n and_o in_o another_o place_n in_o corpore_fw-la christi_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la quoniam_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la christus_fw-la habere_fw-la membra_fw-la damnata_fw-la cedunt_fw-la they_o be_v not_o in_o christ_n body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n because_o christ_n can_v have_v damnable_a member_n and_o bernard_n 1._o say_v manifestum_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la caput_fw-la hypochritae_fw-la christum_fw-la it_o be_v evident_a that_o christ_n be_v not_o the_o head_n of_o a_o hypochrite_n but_o the_o visible_a ruler_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n have_v many_o time_n be_v as_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o report_v not_o only_o hypochrite_v but_o apparent_o monstrous_a and_o damnable_a sinner_n 111.112.113_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n out_o of_o which_o no_o salvation_n can_v be_v have_v falli_fw-la neither_o be_v perpetual_a influence_n and_o assistance_n of_o grace_n absolute_o entail_v upon_o they_o out_o of_o the_o former_a premise_n i_o argue_v thus_o wolf_n hipochrite_n and_o impious_a person_n be_v not_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n of_o the_o creed_n out_o of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n romish_a prelate_n have_v be_v wolf_n hypocrite_n and_o impious_a man_n for_o they_o have_v maintain_v false_a and_o superstitious_a doctrine_n repugnant_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o adverse_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o protestant_n have_v and_o be_v again_o ready_a to_o demonstrate_v and_o they_o have_v be_v most_o notorious_a for_o all_o kind_n of_o abominable_a vice_n as_o romist_n themselves_o have_v publish_v to_o the_o world_n and_o they_o have_v also_o most_o injust_o and_o tyranical_o 112.113_o persecute_v and_o oppress_v true_a believer_n ergo_fw-la romish_n prelate_n be_v not_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n of_o the_o creed_n out_o of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n argument_n 2._o out_o of_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n of_o the_o creed_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n 1.2_o out_o of_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o have_v be_v and_o be_v salvation_n ergo_fw-la the_o present_a roman_a church_n be_v not_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o thus_o the_o obiector_n have_v gain_v nothing_o by_o accuse_v our_o church_n of_o fundamental_a error_n and_o his_o nine_o accusation_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v so_o many_o calumniation_n and_o we_o neither_o err_v fundamental_o in_o any_o main_a article_n nor_o yet_o pertinacious_o or_o malicious_o against_o any_o other_o christian_a verity_n for_o although_o while_o we_o live_v in_o the_o world_n tenebras_fw-la huius_fw-la mortalitatis_fw-la circumferimus_fw-la 237._o as_o s._n augustine_n speak_v we_o carry_v about_o we_o in_o regard_n of_o ourselves_o the_o darkness_n of_o mortality_n tamen_fw-la ad_fw-la scripturae_fw-la lucernam_fw-la ambulamus_fw-la yet_o we_o study_v careful_o to_o walk_v according_a to_o the_o true_a light_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o god_n have_v hitherto_o so_o assist_v we_o that_o the_o evil_a eye_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v not_o able_a to_o discover_v in_o our_o doctrine_n any_o capital_a error_n nevertheless_o if_o upon_o further_a inquisition_n they_o shall_v make_v it_o appear_v by_o divine_a testimony_n or_o other_o sufficient_a proof_n that_o we_o be_v deceive_v in_o any_o matter_n of_o faith_n small_a or_o great_a we_o will_v be_v as_o 〈◊〉_d to_o reform_v ourselves_o as_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o accuse_v us._n and_o in_o all_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o we_o we_o submit_v ourselves_o to_o a_o free_a lawful_a general_a council_n to_o be_v try_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n concern_v which_o s._n augustine_n say_v 11._o extat_fw-la authoritas_fw-la divinarum_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la undè_fw-la mens_fw-la nostra_fw-la deviare_fw-la non_fw-la debet_fw-la nec_fw-la relicto_fw-la solidamento_fw-la divini_fw-la
command_v point_n of_o controversy_n to_o be_v decide_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o holy_a scripture_n 37._o as_o i_o shall_v hereafter_o make_v manifest_a in_o this_o treatise_n yea_o sometime_o the_o doctrine_n of_o one_o sound_v member_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v a_o sovereign_a mean_n to_o convert_v errant_n and_o consequent_o to_o reform_v such_o as_o be_v mislead_v by_o error_n neither_o be_v reformation_n unreasonable_a or_o impossible_a although_o they_o which_o reprove_v other_o be_v themselves_o exorbitant_a in_o some_o thing_n because_o the_o same_o must_v be_v perform_v not_o by_o accommodation_n to_o the_o humour_n of_o reproover_n medicinae_fw-la but_o according_a to_o the_o divine_a rule_n wherein_o all_o thing_n be_v straight_o and_o perfect_a last_o when_o the_o roman_a church_n itself_o be_v in_o schism_n and_o combustion_n which_o happen_v at_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o basill_n and_o in_o the_o day_n of_o antipope_n shall_v no_o reformation_n be_v require_v because_o the_o party_n litigant_fw-la be_v of_o contrary_a opinion_n the_o same_o can_v be_v proportion_v according_a to_o every_o one_o several_a humour_n the_o second_o reason_n take_v from_o counsel_n custom_n etc._n etc._n be_v deficient_a in_o both_o the_o part_n for_o neither_o be_v the_o romish_a doctrine_n to_o wit_n communion_n in_o one_o kind_n pope_n pardon_n latin_a service_n purgatory_n apocryphal_a scripture_n vulgar_a translation_n prefer_v before_o the_o original_a text_n transubstantiation_n etc._n etc._n define_v by_o any_o general_a council_n or_o derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n or_o primitive_a church_n by_o custom_n and_o universal_a consent_n and_o late_a counsel_n and_o custom_n must_v give_v place_n to_o holy_a scripture_n yea_o according_a to_o s._n augustine_n comparata_fw-la no_o understanding_n man_n do_v ever_o make_v the_o counsel_n of_o bishop_n equal_a to_o sacred_a scripture_n and_o some_o of_o our_o learned_a adversary_n collegium_fw-la confess_v that_o a_o general_a council_n of_o pope_n cardinal_n and_o bishop_n be_v not_o of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o college_n of_o the_o apostle_n other_o cassander_n also_o of_o they_o affirm_v that_o such_o counsel_n be_v fallible_a and_o subject_a to_o error_n the_o three_o reason_n wherein_o it_o be_v affirm_v that_o protestant_n forsake_v the_o common_a rule_n of_o faith_n present_v the_o world_n with_o scripture_n understand_v by_o private_a illumination_n be_v ground_v upon_o a_o false_a suggestion_n for_o we_o assume_v to_o ourselves_o no_o other_o illumination_n than_o only_o of_o ordinary_a grace_n and_o we_o maintain_v no_o other_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n as_o divine_v but_o such_o as_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o holy_a scripture_n deliver_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v follow_v by_o protestant_n with_o far_o more_o respect_n than_o by_o romist_n but_o our_o aduerfary_n be_v the_o man_n who_o dissemble_v the_o same_o in_o word_n do_v in_o truth_n maintain_v private_a illumination_n for_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v infallibility_n of_o judgement_n by_o the_o immediate_a inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o not_o by_o the_o study_n and_o meditation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n 506._o jesuit_fw-la wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o possibility_n that_o the_o catholic_a part_n can_v gain_v peace_n to_o christendom_n by_o any_o yield_a unto_o our_o adversary_n either_o reasonable_a or_o unreasonable_a whither_o shall_v lover_n of_o concord_n turn_v themselves_o but_o unto_o your_o gracious_a majesty_n that_o have_v in_o your_o power_n the_o affection_n of_o protestant_n and_o therefore_o will_v be_v the_o fit_a instrument_n for_o their_o reunion_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o god_n of_o charity_n have_v put_v into_o your_o majesty_n heart_n a_o desire_n of_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o your_o hand_n a_o olive-bough-crowne_n of_o peace_n which_o you_o may_v set_v on_o the_o head_n of_o christendom_n which_o weary_a of_o endless_a contention_n pour_v forth_o unto_o your_o majesty_n her_o suppliant_a complaint_n quem_fw-la das_fw-la finem_fw-la rex_fw-la magne_fw-la laborum_fw-la and_o see_v nothing_o hinder_v but_o that_o yourself_o be_v not_o yet_o satisfy_v in_o some_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n particular_o in_o the_o nine_o point_n your_o majesty_n have_v set_v down_o in_o writing_n i_o humble_o present_v unto_o your_o majesty_n these_o my_o poor_a labour_n for_o your_o satisfaction_n so_o much_o desire_v of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o to_o the_o end_n that_o this_o my_o answer_n may_v be_v in_o itself_o more_o solid_a and_o better_o accept_v of_o your_o majesty_n before_o i_o descend_v unto_o particular_n i_o think_v best_o first_o to_o show_v in_o general_a the_o roman_a to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n for_o this_o be_v the_o occasion_n and_o subject_n of_o the_o conference_n betwixt_o dr_n white_a and_o i_o answer_n what_o a_o vast_a and_o impossible_a i_o will_v not_o here_o say_v impious_a enterprise_n do_v you_o in_o the_o depth_n of_o your_o sublimate_v wit_n cast_v upon_o our_o gracious_a sovereign_n must_v his_o majesty_n have_v the_o office_n of_o a_o proctor_n and_o factor_n for_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n nay_o of_o a_o lieutenant_n of_o the_o papal_a force_n to_o reunite_v all_o protestant_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v you_o mean_v the_o procure_n of_o a_o free_a general_n coancell_v of_o all_o christendom_n or_o at_o least_o of_o all_o the_o western_a church_n for_o the_o reduce_v either_o of_o the_o deviate_v part_n home_o to_o the_o truth_n or_o the_o exasperate_v part_n to_o a_o more_o charitable_a comply_v in_o thing_n indifferent_a or_o tolerable_a in_o which_o discussion_n as_o well_o the_o papacy_n itself_o as_o other_o matter_n may_v be_v subject_a to_o trial_n such_o a_o work_n may_v be_v fit_a for_o a_o churchman_n to_o move_v and_o for_o his_o majesty_n to_o affect_v than_o who_o no_o prince_n no_o nor_o private_a christian_n be_v more_o forward_o in_o zeal_n and_o furnish_v in_o wisdom_n to_o purge_v the_o distemper_n and_o heal_v the_o wound_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n but_o your_o former_a word_n show_v the_o frenzy_n of_o the_o demand_n when_o you_o forelay_a this_o for_o a_o ground_n satis_fw-la imperitè_fw-fr nimis_fw-la obstinatè_fw-la that_o those_o particular_a enormity_n that_o we_o protestant_n call_v to_o have_v reform_v be_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n catholic_a principle_n etc._n etc._n and_o so_o this_o your_o dream_a reunion_n must_v be_v not_o to_o come_v on_o your_o part_n one_o step_n towards_o we_o but_o our_o run_v headlong_o to_o you_o which_o be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o slavish_a subjection_n of_o all_o church_n to_o the_o papacy_n and_o the_o trample_a god_n truth_n and_o god_n people_n under_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o unerrable_a uncontrollable_a grand_a signior_n of_o the_o sevenhilled_n city_n it_o seem_v you_o have_v forget_v or_o will_v extinguish_v the_o validity_n and_o memory_n of_o his_o majesty_n most_o judicious_a write_n in_o maintenance_n of_o orthodox_n religion_n and_o of_o the_o liberty_n of_o christendom_n and_o shake_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o papal_a corruption_n and_o tyranny_n otherwise_o you_o never_o will_v thus_o bold_o and_o lewd_o call_v to_o so_o puissant_a a_o champion_n in_o the_o lord_n battle_n to_o sound_a retreat_n to_o who_o the_o state_n of_o christendom_n to_o speak_v in_o your_o phrase_n pour_v forth_o her_o suppliant_a complaint_n but_o to_o a_o end_n opposite_a to_o your_o project_n qua_fw-la roma_fw-la patet_fw-la fera_fw-fr regnat_fw-la erinys_n 1._o in_o facinus_fw-la iurasce_fw-la pute_fw-la dent_n ocius_fw-la omnes_fw-la quas_fw-la meruere_fw-la pati_fw-la sic_fw-la stat_fw-la sententia_fw-la poenas_fw-la touch_v the_o necessity_n of_o understanding_n the_o quality_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n jesuit_fw-la think_v best_o first_o to_o show_v in_o general_a the_o roman_a to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n for_o this_o be_v the_o occasion_n and_o subject_n of_o the_o conference_n betwixt_o dr._n white_a and_o i_o and_o be_v the_o most_o important_a and_o manifest_a point_n of_o controversy_n in_o which_o all_o other_o be_v involue_v answer_n the_o most_o important_a neither_o most_o nor_o important_a at_o all_o to_o all_o but_o only_o to_o those_o who_o be_v either_o involue_v in_o that_o church_n or_o vex_v by_o it_o if_o people_n may_v attain_v salvation_n without_o know_v the_o quality_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n than_o it_o be_v not_o of_o all_o question_n and_o controversy_n most_o important_a to_o know_v whether_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o not_o but_o many_o people_n may_v be_v save_v without_o this_o knowledge_n for_o all_o they_o may_v attain_v salvation_n which_o be_v baptize_v and_o which_o believe_v and_o repent_v mark_v 16_o 16._o act_n 2_o 38._o and_o which_o have_v all_o the_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o salvation_n
it_o be_v apostolical_a final_o and_o principal_o into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n answer_n saint_n augustine_n deliver_v not_o the_o former_a and_o therefore_o the_o jesuit_n can_v infer_v the_o latter_a we_o have_v indeed_o no_o strong_a or_o more_o excellent_a moral_a proof_n infallibilis_fw-la than_o the_o perpetual_a testimony_n of_o the_o church_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n but_o we_o have_v a_o strong_a and_o more_o excellent_a divine_a proof_n to_o wit_n the_o prophecy_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n concern_v the_o perpetual_a preservation_n of_o the_o gospel_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n also_o that_o the_o aposcolical_a scripture_n be_v once_o incorrupt_a be_v manifest_a etc._n because_o they_o be_v give_v by_o divine_a inspiration_n and_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o they_o be_v not_o afterward_o corrupt_v because_o no_o authority_n or_o sufficient_a argument_n can_v be_v produce_v to_o procue_v they_o in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n to_o have_v be_v corrupt_v 〈◊〉_d now_o that_o which_o be_v once_o know_v by_o divine_a testimony_n to_o have_v be_v incorrupt_a can_v be_v prove_v afterward_o to_o have_v be_v corrupt_v do_v by_o divine_a testimony_n appear_v to_o be_v incorrupt_a because_o the_o first_o divine_a testimony_n stand_v still_o in_o force_n the_o text_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v once_o know_v by_o divine_a testimony_n to_o have_v be_v incorrupt_a and_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v afterward_o corrupt_v ergo_fw-la it_o do_v still_o appear_v by_o divine_a testimony_n that_o the_o text_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v incorrupt_a and_o the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n final_o and_o principal_o rest_v upon_o that_o divine_a testimony_n and_o not_o upon_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o present_a church_n last_o the_o harmony_n &_o coherence_n of_o the_o gospel_n both_o with_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n lu._n 24.27_o act._n 28.23_o and_o of_o the_o several_a part_n of_o the_o gospel_n among_o themselves_o 27._o do_v manifest_a that_o the_o text_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v incorrupt_a for_o if_o the_o same_o be_v corrupt_v in_o any_o part_n corruption_n of_o word_n will_v produce_v alteration_n and_o difference_n of_o matter_n but_o we_o find_v at_o this_o day_n a_o perfect_a harmony_n of_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o gospel_n among_o themselves_o and_o a_o perfect_a agreement_n of_o the_o same_o with_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o from_o the_o same_o be_v a_o inward_a argument_n we_o may_v collect_v that_o the_o text_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v at_o this_o day_n incorrupt_a now_o have_v so_o many_o argument_n beside_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n to_o prove_v the_o integrity_n of_o the_o text_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o do_v not_o fly_v neither_o be_v it_o necessary_a to_o fly_v to_o private_a spirit_n or_o particular_a revelation_n for_o assurance_n and_o that_o which_o our_o adversary_n object_n against_o we_o say_v that_o we_o resolve_v our_o faith_n and_o religion_n into_o the_o private_a spirit_n be_v a_o foolish_a calumniation_n for_o we_o resolve_v our_o faith_n into_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n outward_a word_n expound_v unto_o we_o by_o such_o help_n and_o mean_n as_o both_o the_o scripture_n itself_o and_o the_o ancient_a church_n require_v as_o into_o the_o divine_a motive_n and_o object_n of_o belief_n and_o we_o affirm_v that_o his_o grace_n and_o holy_a spirit_n work_v by_o the_o outward_a mean_n enable_v draw_v and_o persuade_v the_o conscience_n to_o assent_v john_n 6.45_o &_o 12.37_o 38.1_o cor._n 2.12_o etc._n etc._n 12.3_o &_o 2._o cor._n 3.5_o act._n 16.14_o 1._o john_n 2.20.27_o isaiah_n 50.5_o and_o herein_o we_o fly_v to_o no_o private_a spirit_n or_o revelation_n but_o maintain_v the_o ordinary_a assistance_n of_o divine_a grace_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o of_o s._n augustine_n fine_a and_o the_o common_a tenet_n of_o the_o schoolman_n themselves_o interiorem_fw-la jesvit_n 2._o argument_n second_o i_o 〈◊〉_d that_o common_a unlearned_a people_n the_o great_a part_n of_o christianity_n be_v persuade_v about_o all_o substantial_a point_n of_o faith_n by_o tradition_n not_o by_o scripture_n common_a unlearned_a people_n have_v true_a christian_a faith_n in_o all_o point_v necessary_a and_o snfficient_a unto_o salvation_n but_o they_o have_v not_o faith_n of_o all_o these_o main_a and_o substantial_a point_n ground_v on_o scripture_n for_o they_o can_v neither_o understand_v nor_o read_v any_o scripture_n but_o translate_v into_o vulgar_a language_n and_o so_o if_o they_o believe_v upon_o scripture_n they_o believe_v upon_o scripture_n translate_v into_o their_o mother_n tongue_n but_o before_o that_o they_o can_v know_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v true_o translate_v even_o in_o all_o substantial_a point_n that_o so_o they_o may_v build_v of_o it_o they_o must_v first_o know_v what_o be_v the_o main_a and_o substantial_a point_n and_o firm_o believe_v they_o so_o that_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o scripture_n translate_v against_o they_o for_o if_o they_o know_v they_o not_o before_o how_o can_v they_o know_v that_o scripture_n in_o place_n that_o concern_v they_o be_v true_o translate_v if_o they_o do_v not_o before_o hand_n firm_o believe_v they_o why_o shall_v they_o be_v ready_a to_o allow_v translation_n that_o agree_v with_o they_o and_o to_o reject_v the_o translation_n which_o differ_v from_o they_o ergo_fw-la originally_n and_o before_o they_o know_v any_o scripture_n they_o have_v faith_n ground_v on_o the_o tradition_n of_o their_o ancestor_n by_o the_o light_n whereof_o they_o be_v able_a to_o judge_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o translation_n about_o such_o substantial_a point_n as_o they_o firm_o believe_v by_o tradition_n answer_n the_o question_n which_o the_o jesuit_n undertake_v to_o prove_v in_o his_o four_o argument_n be_v that_o our_o resolution_n of_o faith_n stay_v final_o upon_o the_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o upon_o the_o scripture_n his_o second_o argument_n to_o prove_v this_o be_v take_v from_o the_o manner_n of_o vulgar_a and_o illiterate_a people_n in_o resolve_v their_o faith_n for_o if_o these_o be_v the_o great_a part_n of_o christianity_n do_v ground_n their_o creed_n touch_v all_o point_n of_o doctrine_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n upon_o tradition_n of_o their_o ancestor_n andif_a they_o have_v true_a faith_n before_o they_o know_v and_o understand_v the_o scripture_n than_o christian_a faith_n at_o leastwise_o among_o the_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n be_v resolve_v final_o into_o the_o tradition_n of_o ancestor_n and_o not_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o he_o prove_v that_o these_o vulgar_a people_n have_v faith_n touch_v all_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n before_o they_o know_v the_o scripture_n because_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o read_v or_o understand_v scripture_n until_o it_o be_v translate_v into_o their_o mother_n tongue_n and_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o judge_v of_o translation_n or_o know_v they_o to_o be_v true_a unless_o they_o first_o believe_v the_o principal_a point_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o by_o compare_v translation_n of_o scripture_n with_o the_o say_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n former_o by_o they_o believe_v be_v enable_v to_o judge_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o translation_n this_o paralogism_n have_v certain_a ambiguous_a or_o equivocal_a term_n which_o must_v be_v distinguish_v and_o then_o i_o will_v apply_v my_o answer_n first_o the_o term_n of_o scripture_n may_v be_v take_v for_o the_o letter_n and_o text_n of_o the_o scripture_n together_o with_o the_o name_n of_o the_o several_a book_n author_n and_o section_n and_o second_o it_o may_v signify_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n without_o mention_n of_o the_o particular_a book_n john_n 7.38_o rom._n 1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o second_o resolution_n of_o faith_n be_v either_o distinct_a and_o explicit_a 10._o wherein_o believer_n be_v able_a to_o declare_v the_o several_a reason_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o to_o proceed_v from_o one_o reason_n of_o believe_v to_o another_o until_o they_o ascend_v by_o degree_n to_o the_o principal_a ground_n or_o else_o implicit_a and_o virtual_a principia_fw-la wherein_o believer_n can_v proceed_v distinct_a lie_n and_o with_o explication_n of_o the_o several_a reason_n and_o ground_n of_o faith_n but_o rest_v themselves_o upon_o one_o prime_a and_o radical_a ground_n be_v ready_a for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o to_o believe_v all_o other_o particular_a reason_n and_o verity_n of_o faith_n when_o they_o be_v declare_v unto_o they_o three_o tradition_n may_v signify_v either_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o good_a manner_n not_o contain_v or_o write_v in_o holy_a scripture_n express_o or_o involue_o or_o else_o the_o same_o doctrine_n which_o be_v find_v in_o holy_a scripture_n deliver_v by_o ancestor_n or_o teacher_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n these_o distinction_n premise_v i_o answer_v the_o objection_n 1
be_v baptize_v and_o external_o profess_v christianity_n and_o according_a to_o this_o notion_n it_o comprehend_v both_o the_o good_a and_o the_o bad_a the_o clean_a and_o the_o unclean_a 13._o of_o that_o profession_n 2._o tim._n 2._o 20._o math._n 13.25.47_o math._n 3.12_o etc._n etc._n 22.10_o 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v take_v for_o particular_a society_n and_o congregation_n of_o christian_n apoc._n 1.4_o &_o 2.1_o and_o sometime_o it_o be_v take_v for_o the_o pastor_n of_o particular_a church_n math._n 18.17_o sometime_o for_o the_o people_n act_v 20.28_o sometime_o for_o the_o whole_a flock_n consist_v of_o pastor_n and_o people_n adhaerens_fw-la apoc._n 3.6_o but_o it_o be_v never_o take_v in_o holy_a scripture_n for_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n 75._o if_o the_o jesuit_n in_o his_o proposition_n there_o be_v a_o visible_a church_n always_o in_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n understand_v the_o 〈◊〉_d church_n in_o the_o first_o notion_n than_o it_o be_v deny_v that_o we_o be_v absolute_o to_o adhere_v to_o the_o tradition_n of_o this_o church_n or_o that_o the_o same_o be_v always_o and_o entire_o one_o universal_a apostolical_a holy_a according_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o nicene_n etc._n creed_n second_o according_a to_o the_o second_o notion_n the_o church_n be_v not_o visible_a for_o a_o principal_a part_n thereof_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o the_o other_o moetie_n militant_a upon_o earth_n be_v consider_v as_o elect_v and_o holy_a be_v know_v intuitive_o to_o god_n only_o 2._o tim._n 2.19_o and_o moral_o coniectural_o and_o according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n to_o man_n in_o this_o world_n 2._o thess._n 2.13_o infantibus_fw-la three_o according_a to_o the_o three_o notion_n the_o church_n be_v visible_a in_o all_o age_n and_o some_o part_n thereof_o teach_v and_o profess_v right_a faith_n in_o all_o substantial_a and_o fundamental_a article_n and_o we_o be_v to_o cleave_v to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o same_o so_o far_o as_o in_o the_o delivery_n thereof_o it_o exceed_v and_o transgress_v not_o the_o bound_n of_o lawful_a authority_n scripturae_fw-la and_o teach_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n s._n chrysostome_n say_v because_o seducer_n be_v often_o find_v even_o in_o true_a church_n we_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v unless_o they_o speak_v and_o do_v that_o which_o be_v consonant_a to_o the_o scripture_n scripture_n and_o in_o another_o place_n circumferenti_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d if_o the_o priest_n teach_v any_o perverse_a doctrine_n give_v no_o credit_n yea_o though_o he_o be_v a_o angel_n nay_o i_o will_v presume_v to_o say_v more_o than_o this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d one_o ought_v not_o believe_v paul_n if_o he_o shall_v preach_v any_o thing_n humane_a or_o of_o himself_o but_o as_o he_o be_v a_o apostle_n and_o have_v christ_n speak_v in_o he_o last_o according_a to_o the_o four_o acceptation_n there_o be_v ever_o in_o the_o world_n particular_a church_n and_o society_n of_o christian_n and_o every_o one_o of_o these_o church_n profess_v some_o portion_n of_o divine_a verity_n but_o we_o must_v inquire_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n which_o of_o these_o be_v pure_a and_o orthodoxal_a and_o on_o the_o contrary_a which_o of_o they_o be_v infect_v with_o error_n 〈◊〉_d and_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o one_o and_o avoid_v the_o corruption_n of_o the_o other_o remarkable_a observation_n concern_v the_o church_n observation_n i._n the_o external_a visible_a church_n be_v a_o intermix_v etc._n or_o compound_v society_n body_n and_o state_n of_o christian_a people_n profess_v the_o faith_n and_o worship_n of_o christ_n in_o which_o be_v find_v sheep_n and_o goat_n wheat_n and_o tare_n gold_n and_o dross_n good_a fish_n and_o bad_a and_o vessel_n of_o honour_n and_o dishonour_n this_o common_a and_o general_a society_n and_o body_n consist_v of_o diverse_a particular_a church_n consent_v and_o agree_v in_o the_o profess_v of_o some_o part_n of_o divine_a verity_n and_o of_o these_o church_n some_o be_v orthodoxal_a some_o be_v impure_a in_o faith_n and_o religion_n and_o also_o these_o be_v compare_v be_v respective_o pure_a or_o impure_a and_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o each_o particular_a church_n the_o member_n be_v better_a or_o worse_o more_o or_o less_o holy_a or_o corrupt_a observat._n ii_o whereas_o the_o church_n have_v many_o title_n and_o property_n belong_v to_o it_o and_o christ_n jesus_n the_o head_n thereof_o have_v make_v sundry_a promise_n and_o confer_v diverse_a grace_n upon_o it_o we_o must_v consider_v which_o part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o proper_a subject_n of_o these_o quality_n promise_n and_o grace_n sponfi_n for_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o as_o sheep_n and_o goat_n chaff_n and_o wheat_n gold_n and_o dross_n be_v of_o a_o contrary_a kind_n although_o they_o be_v intermix_v so_o likewise_o the_o affection_n and_o attribute_n of_o the_o same_o although_o they_o be_v speak_v in_o general_a of_o the_o whole_a subject_n as_o a_o heap_n which_o have_v wheat_n and_o chaff_n a_o field_n which_o have_v wheat_n and_o tare_n be_v call_v a_o heap_n of_o grain_n a_o field_n of_o wheat_n yet_o many_o of_o they_o appertain_v formal_o and_o indeed_o only_o to_o the_o better_a part_n of_o the_o common_a subject_n observat._n iii_o in_o the_o visible_a society_n of_o christian_a people_n there_o be_v find_v according_a to_o s._n augustine_n sempiterna_fw-la citizen_n of_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n and_o also_o inhabitant_n of_o babylon_n and_o as_o the_o same_o father_n teach_v notum_fw-la est_fw-la civis_fw-la malae_fw-la civitatis_fw-la administrare_fw-la quosdam_fw-la actus_fw-la 〈◊〉_d civitatis_fw-la it_o be_v manifest_a that_o in_o the_o visible_a church_n burgher_n of_o the_o wicked_a city_n babylon_n do_v administer_v some_o function_n of_o the_o holy_a city_n jerusalem_n joh._n 12.6_o 2._o timoth_n 4.10_o apoc._n 3.14_o 15._o phil._n 〈◊〉_d joh._n 3.9_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n make_v to_o the_o church_n concern_v his_o 1._o presence_n and_o assistance_n to_o his_o word_n and_o sacrament_n preach_v and_o administer_v according_a to_o his_o commandment_n be_v fulfil_v when_o wicked_a person_n execute_v the_o office_n and_o perform_v the_o work_n of_o outward_a 〈◊〉_d for_o although_o wicked_a person_n like_o the_o carpenter_n of_o noah_n ark_n reap_v no_o benefit_n to_o themselves_o yet_o god_n almighty_a concur_v with_o their_o ministry_n be_v his_o own_o ordinance_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o devout_a and_o worthy_a communicant_n observat._n four_o some_o thing_n be_v speak_v of_o the_o church_n in_o common_a or_o general_a term_n to_o show_v what_o the_o whole_a be_v in_o respect_n of_o god_n outward_a vocation_n or_o what_o the_o office_n and_o duty_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v but_o the_o same_o promise_n property_n and_o privilege_n be_v real_o fulfil_v or_o find_v in_o the_o better_o and_o sound_a part_n thereof_o only_o 71._o when_o our_o saviour_n promise_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o the_o church_n matth._n 16.18_o he_o understand_v such_o a_o church_n as_o hear_v and_o obey_v his_o word_n dispositionem_fw-la and_o not_o a_o visible_a company_n or_o hierarchy_n of_o prelate_n which_o forsake_v his_o word_n and_o do_v what_o they_o list_v august_n d._n vnit._fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la cap._n 18._o ecclesia_fw-la in_o his_o est_fw-la qui_fw-la adificant_a supra_fw-la petram_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la credunt_fw-la verbum_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o faciunt_fw-la &_o d._n baptismo_fw-la lib._n 6._o cap._n 24._o nun_n illi_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o ecclefia_fw-la qui_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o petra_n qui_fw-la autem_fw-la in_o petra_n non_fw-la sunt_fw-la nec_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la sunt_fw-la iam_fw-la ergò_fw-la videamus_fw-la utrum_fw-la super_fw-la petram_fw-la aedificium_fw-la suum_fw-la constituant_fw-la qui_fw-la audiunt_fw-la christi_fw-la verba_fw-la &_o non_fw-la faciant_fw-la saint_n augustine_n in_o these_o word_n deliver_v three_o thing_n first_o the_o church_n be_v in_o they_o which_o build_v upon_o the_o rock_n second_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o rock_n three_o they_o only_o build_v upon_o the_o rock_n and_o be_v in_o the_o rock_n which_o believe_v and_o obey_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n petram_fw-la and_o this_o doctrine_n of_o s._n augustine_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n matth._n 7.24_o 1._o cor._n 3.11_o &_o 10.4_o also_o when_o s._n paul_n say_v the_o church_n be_v the_o ground_n and_o pillar_n of_o truth_n 3.15_o 1._o tim._n 3._o 15._o by_o the_o church_n he_o understand_v the_o house_n of_o the_o live_a god_n as_o the_o precedent_a part_n of_o his_o speech_n show_v to_o wit_n if_o i_o tarry_v long_o that_o thou_o may_v know_v how_o thou_o ought_v to_o behave_v thyself_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n but_o they_o alone_o be_v very_o and_o indeed_o the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o believe_v and_o love_v the_o truth_n
persecution_n the_o love_n of_o many_o may_v wax_v cold_a math._n 24.12_o and_o iniquity_n and_o infidelity_n so_o abound_v luc._n 17.26_o &_o cap._n 18.8_o that_o the_o number_n of_o right_a believer_n shall_v be_v few_o and_o the_o same_o may_v be_v compel_v to_o exercise_v their_o religion_n in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d second_o we_o deny_v that_o a_o natural_a man_n be_v able_a infallible_o to_o judge_v and_o discern_v by_o sense_n and_o common_a reason_n or_o human_a prudence_n only_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n c._n whereunto_o every_o one_o that_o will_v be_v save_v must_v unite_v and_o join_v himself_o 1._o cor._n 2.11.14_o now_o the_o reason_n for_o which_o we_o reject_v or_o limit_v the_o popish_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o church_n visibilitie_n be_v these_o est_fw-la and_o not_o what_o the_o same_o must_v be_v perpetual_o some_o teach_v what_o the_o same_o be_v by_o outward_a call_n and_o consequent_o what_o in_o right_n by_o precept_n and_o duty_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v some_o etc._n text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n describe_v the_o inward_a and_o spiritual_a beauty_n of_o the_o sound_a part_n of_o the_o church_n by_o allegory_n and_o similitude_n take_v from_o external_a and_o worldly_a pomp_n and_o glory_n isaiah_n some_o place_n show_v what_o 〈◊〉_d ought_v to_o perform_v when_o the_o public_a and_o common_a ministry_n of_o the_o church_n be_v incorrupt_a and_o ordinary_a pastor_n in_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n proceed_v according_a to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o christ._n isaiah_n last_o some_o of_o the_o father_n live_v in_o age_n wherein_o the_o outward_a face_n of_o the_o church_n be_v external_o glorious_a &_o not_o foresee_v what_o be_v imminent_a and_o future_a may_v probable_o suppose_v that_o the_o same_o shall_v always_o retain_v the_o like_a beauty_n and_o yet_o s._n augustine_n who_o because_o of_o the_o donatist_n speak_v most_o large_o in_o this_o kind_n 25._o use_v word_n of_o limitation_n and_o exception_n and_o affirm_v that_o the_o splendour_n of_o the_o church_n in_o time_n of_o persecution_n may_v be_v eclipse_v and_o the_o glory_n thereof_o overshadow_a 25._o second_o the_o argument_n against_o the_o glorious_a and_o perpetual_a visibilitie_n of_o the_o true_a church_n according_a to_o our_o adversary_n tenet_n be_v weighty_a first_o the_o best_a and_o worthy_a member_n of_o the_o say_a church_n may_v be_v persecute_v disgrace_v and_o condemn_v as_o heretic_n and_o impious_a person_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o example_n of_o 25._o athanasius_n hilarius_n ambrose_n etc._n etc._n and_o this_o may_v be_v do_v by_o great_a multitude_n and_o by_o learned_a person_n and_o by_o such_o as_o be_v potent_a in_o worldly_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n and_o in_o such_o time_n the_o true_a church_n under_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o true_a church_n can_v be_v general_o and_o glorious_o visible_a second_o the_o prime_a ruler_n and_o commander_n in_o the_o visible_a church_n do_v at_o some_o time_n by_o ambition_n and_o other_o enormous_a vice_n become_v enemy_n unto_o truth_n etc._n as_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o acknowledge_v concern_v all_o other_o bishop_n but_o only_o the_o roman_a and_o he_o adhere_v and_o that_o the_o roman_a pope_n and_o prelate_n have_v depart_v from_o right_a faith_n and_o exceed_v other_o in_o monstrous_a ambition_n and_o wickedness_n be_v report_v by_o many_o among_o themselves_o now_o when_o these_o master-builder_n fall_v innumerable_a multitude_n of_o inferior_a rank_n for_o hope_n favour_n fear_v and_o other_o humane_a and_o carnal_a respect_n concur_v with_o they_o sequitur_fw-la and_o then_o the_o number_n of_o infidel_n which_o remain_v without_o the_o church_n be_v add_v to_o the_o church_n malignant_a the_o total_a sum_n of_o both_o amount_v to_o a_o great_a number_n and_o in_o comparison_n of_o they_o right_a believer_n may_v be_v few_o sunt_fw-la and_o their_o reputation_n in_o the_o world_n so_o mean_a as_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v general_o know_v the_o true_a church_n and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o know_v and_o esteem_v a_o true_a church_n by_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n than_o they_o be_v not_o famous_o visible_a at_o all_o time_n as_o our_o adversary_n maintain_v three_o the_o scripture_n foretell_v a_o come_n and_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n a_o large_a apostasy_n and_o revolt_n from_o the_o right_a faith_n a_o rarity_n of_o true_a believer_n and_o decay_v of_o charity_n a_o fly_a of_o the_o true_a church_n into_o the_o wilderness_n and_o grievous_a persecution_n of_o god_n elect_n before_o the_o final_a consummation_n of_o the_o world_n 2._o thess._n 2.3_o etc._n etc._n 1._o tim._n 4.1_o 2._o tim._n 3.1_o etc._n etc._n luc._n 18.8_o matth._n 24._o 12_o 24._o revel_v 12.6_o prophetarum_fw-la but_o such_o a_o perpetual_a visibilitie_n of_o the_o church_n as_o romist_n imagine_v be_v not_o compatible_a with_o the_o precedent_a prediction_n but_o the_o jesuit_n say_v jesuit_fw-la because_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v at_o all_o time_n famous_a glorious_a and_o notorious_o know_v in_o the_o world_n therefore_o the_o true_a church_n which_o be_v the_o teacher_n pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o tradition_n must_v be_v at_o all_o time_n famous_o visible_a to_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n answer_n neither_o the_o antecedent_n nor_o consequent_a of_o this_o argument_n be_v firm_a it_o be_v not_o always_o true_a that_o those_o thing_n be_v visible_a which_o make_v other_o thing_n famous_a glorious_a and_o notorious_o know_v for_o that_o which_o be_v innisible_a to_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n may_v cause_v other_o thing_n to_o be_v famous_a as_o we_o see_v in_o god_n himself_o in_o christ_n in_o the_o holy_a apostle_n etc._n etc._n also_o person_n live_v in_o disgrace_n and_o persecution_n may_v by_o write_v from_o exile_n prison_n or_o unknown_a habitation_n make_v divine_a truth_n notorious_o know_v to_o the_o make_n of_o the_o enemy_n thereof_o inexcusable_a and_o the_o conversion_n of_o other_o as_o appear_z in_o athanasius_n second_o the_o antecedent_n be_v false_a if_o the_o jesuit_n by_o the_o word_n must_v understand_v that_o which_o by_o a_o immutable_a providence_n of_o the_o almighty_a shall_v infallible_o in_o all_o age_n be_v fulfil_v it_o be_v not_o decree_v by_o the_o almighty_a that_o the_o doctrine_n and_o tradition_n of_o divine_a verity_n shall_v in_o all_o age_n be_v general_o famous_a and_o notorious_o know_v to_o the_o world_n the_o same_o must_v always_o in_o matter_n substantial_a and_o necessary_a be_v sufficient_o know_v to_o some_o part_n of_o the_o world_n but_o many_o people_n for_o sundry_a age_n have_v be_v ignorant_a of_o christ_n mundo_fw-la and_o of_o the_o whole_a tradition_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o a_o large_a tract_n of_o the_o world_n remain_v at_o this_o present_a day_n in_o heathenish_a and_o damnable_a ignorance_n 4._o and_o consequent_o to_o a_o large_a part_n of_o the_o world_n tradition_n be_v not_o in_o a_o famous_a and_o glorious_a manner_n notorious_o know_v jesuit_fw-la three_o the_o church_n be_v apostolical_a and_o that_o apparent_o descend_v from_o the_o apostolical_a sea_n by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n 17._o usque_fw-la ad_fw-la confessionem_fw-la generis_fw-la humani_fw-la even_o to_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o humane_a kind_n as_o s._n augustine_n speak_v answer_n the_o true_a visible_a church_n be_v name_v apostolical_a not_o because_o of_o local_a and_o personal_a succession_n of_o bishop_n only_a or_o principal_o but_o because_o it_o retain_v the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n eph._n 2._o 20._o doctrinam_fw-la revel_v 21.14_o est_fw-la tertullian_n d._n prascript_n cap._n 32._o affirm_v doctrinae_fw-la that_o church_n which_o be_v able_a to_o produce_v none_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o other_o apostolical_a man_n for_o their_o first_o planter_n be_v notwithstanding_o apostolical_a for_o consent_v of_o faith_n and_o consanguinity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o many_o learned_a papist_n ancient_a and_o modern_a say_v 21._o the_o church_n be_v call_v apostolical_a because_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o respect_n of_o faith_n law_n and_o sacrament_n but_o personal_a or_o local_a succession_n only_o and_o in_o itself_o make_v not_o the_o church_n apostolical_a because_o hireling_n and_o wolf_n may_v lineal_o succeed_v lawful_a and_o orthodox_n pastor_n act._n 20.29_o 30._o even_o as_o sickness_n succee_v health_n and_o darkness_n light_n and_o a_o tempest_n fair_a weather_n as_o gregory_n nazianzen_n affirm_v orat._n d._n laud._n athanasij_n 377._o that_o which_o be_v common_a and_o separable_a can_v of_o itself_o demonstrate_v the_o true_a church_n and_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v proper_a and_o inseparable_a agree_v to_o all_o time_n to_o every_o true_a church_n as_o bellarmine_n ecclesia_fw-la affirm_v also_o the_o same_o must_v be_v so_o conspicuous_a as_o that_o they_o can_v easy_o be_v pretend_v by_o adversary_n 〈◊〉_d or_o be_v at_o all_o
grievous_a penalty_n to_o depart_v out_o of_o babylon_n and_o spiritual_a sodom_n apoc._n 18.4_o and_o chap._n 11.8_o saint_n paul_n speak_v of_o such_o as_o teach_v diverse_a doctrine_n from_o the_o apostle_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d depart_v from_o such_o from_o their_o assembly_n and_o church_n read_v act_n 19_o 8._o 1._o corinth_n 10._o 14._o 2._o cor._n 6._o 14_o 15_o 17._o hos._n 10._o 17._o the_o roman_a church_n in_o those_o thing_n wherein_o we_o depart_v from_o it_o be_v shameful_o corrupt_v it_o do_v not_o only_o forsake_v burr_n deprave_v and_o persecute_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n the_o leprosy_n thereof_o be_v incurable_a for_o it_o will_v not_o judge_v itself_o nor_o be_v reprove_v by_o other_o nor_o reform_v the_o least_o error_n but_o desperate_o follow_v the_o canon_n si_fw-mi papa_n &c_n &c_n iudicandus_fw-la and_o none_o may_v enjoy_v life_n and_o breath_n within_o she_o precinct_n which_o will_v not_o obey_v her_o tradition_n regem_fw-la these_o romulean_n unless_o they_o be_v blind_v like_o elymas_n can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a at_o least_o of_o some_o of_o their_o error_n and_o corruption_n but_o they_o choose_v rather_o in_o their_o tridentine_a synod_n to_o proclaim_v and_o propugne_v apert_o or_o covert_o all_o their_o ancient_a forgery_n than_o to_o compassionate_v the_o distress_a and_o 〈◊〉_d christian_n world_n by_o mitigate_a or_o condescend_v according_a to_o truth_n in_o the_o small_a matter_n it_o have_v be_v most_o facile_a for_o they_o without_o any_o prejudice_n or_o damage_n to_o themselves_o to_o have_v permit_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n in_o both_o kind_n the_o public_a 〈◊〉_d of_o god_n in_o a_o know_a and_o understand_v language_n ei_fw-la to_o have_v abolish_v the_o adoration_n of_o image_n etc._n etc._n but_o their_o luciferian_n pride_n and_o malice_n be_v so_o transcendent_a that_o they_o rather_o presume_v to_o obtrude_v new_a scandal_n upon_o the_o christian_a world_n than_o to_o use_v the_o least_o moderation_n for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o ever_o since_o that_o synod_n they_o have_v proceed_v from_o evil_a to_o worse_o obscure_v and_o outface_v the_o truth_n with_o forgery_n and_o sophistry_n they_o have_v conspire_v against_o kingdom_n and_o state_n they_o have_v surpass_v profess_v infidel_n in_o perfidious_a stratagem_n and_o immane_a cruelty_n etc._n last_o whereas_o they_o expel_v we_o by_o excommunication_n and_o chase_v we_o away_o from_o they_o by_o persecution_n yet_o this_o roman_a advocate_n tax_v we_o of_o schism_n and_o apostasy_n never_o remember_v what_o s._n augustine_n long_o since_o deliver_v the_o sacrilege_n of_o schism_n be_v then_o commit_v when_o there_o be_v no_o just_a cause_n of_o separation_n separationis_fw-la or_o what_o some_o of_o his_o own_o part_n have_v say_v tabefierent_fw-la the_o sheep_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o any_o shepherd_n which_o be_v become_v a_o wolf_n or_o be_v adverse_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o flock_n jesuit_fw-la which_o also_o plain_o will_v appear_v to_o any_o man_n of_o understanding_n that_o cast_v upon_o she_o a_o impartial_a eye_n for_o be_v she_o not_o conspicuous_o one_o the_o professor_n thereof_o agree_v in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n howsoever_o they_o differ_v about_o small_a undefined_a question_n answer_n external_a unity_n be_v find_v among_o infidel_n and_o the_o turk_n be_v more_o in_o number_n than_o papist_n never_o disagree_v among_o themselves_o touch_v matter_n of_o their_o religion_n shall_v we_o then_o say_v as_o the_o jesuit_n do_v it_o will_v plain_o appear_v to_o any_o man_n of_o understanding_n that_o cast_v his_o eye_n upon_o turkey_n that_o the_o same_o have_v verity_n because_o it_o be_v conspicuous_o one_o saint_n augustine_n say_v that_o jew_n heretic_n and_o infidel_n observe_v unity_n against_o unity_n 〈◊〉_d s._n bernard_n 15._o alia_fw-la est_fw-la unitas_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la alia_fw-la facinorosorum_fw-la the_o unity_n of_o saint_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o unity_n of_o wicked_a man_n deceiver_n another_o s._n hilary_n 28._o vnitas_fw-la fidei_fw-la &_o unitas_fw-la perfidiae_fw-la there_o be_v unity_n of_o faith_n and_o there_o be_v likewise_o perfidious_a and_o faithless_a unity_n s._n gregory_n say_v 24._o that_o the_o minister_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v cleave_v together_o like_o the_o scale_n of_o leviathan_n therefore_o because_o external_a unity_n be_v in_o itself_o a_o thing_n common_a and_o jew_n and_o mahometist_n enjoy_v the_o same_o more_o apparent_o than_o many_o christian_n our_o adversary_n must_v prove_v that_o his_o church_n have_v verity_n before_o his_o argument_n take_v from_o external_a unity_n can_v be_v of_o any_o force_n neither_o be_v papistical_a unity_n so_o entire_a and_o absolute_a as_o this_o man_n glori_v for_o papall_v disagree_v both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o manner_n they_o differ_v concern_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o the_o pope_n or_o in_o the_o general_n council_n possit_fw-la they_o differ_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o freewill_n and_o grace_n they_o differ_v concern_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n there_o be_v three_o opinion_n among_o they_o concern_v the_o temporal_a dominion_n of_o pope_n some_o say_v he_o have_v direct_v temporal_a power_n alij_fw-la some_o say_v indirect_a 12._o some_o say_v he_o have_v none_o 1._o but_o by_o the_o free_a donation_n of_o prince_n and_o that_o prince_n be_v evil_o advise_v in_o yield_v he_o so_o much_o intromitteret_fw-la and_o modern_a pope_n disagree_v with_o the_o ancient_a concern_v the_o dignity_n of_o univerfall_a bishop_n adoration_n of_o image_n transubstantiation_n communion_n in_o both_o kind_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o good_a work_n also_o they_o themselves_o complain_v of_o grievous_a hatred_n and_o discord_n reign_v general_o among_o they_o and_o some_o of_o they_o say_v there_o be_v great_a concord_n among_o gentile_n christianos_n and_o when_o they_o colour_v these_o palpable_a dissension_n pretend_v that_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n first_o this_o judge_n and_o umpire_n be_v many_o time_n a_o peace-breaker_n bergom_n and_o no_o peacemaker_n villam_fw-la a_o ishmael_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n who_o hand_n be_v against_o every_o man_n and_o every_o man_n hand_n be_v against_o he_o second_o unity_n which_o be_v found_v on_o blind_a obedience_n be_v only_o a_o unity_n of_o policy_n and_o not_o of_o true_a faith_n three_o this_o submission_n make_v not_o actual_a concord_n and_o miserable_a dissension_n both_o intestine_a and_o foreign_a at_o home_o and_o abroad_o rage_v between_o pope_n and_o prince_n and_o between_o one_o popish_a faction_n and_o another_o the_o guelph_n and_o gibelline_n the_o papall_v and_o imperial_n be_v as_o famous_a in_o history_n for_o their_o discord_n as_o the_o son_n of_o cadmus_n and_o when_o papistry_n be_v most_o potent_a the_o christian_a world_n be_v most_o distract_v jesuit_fw-la apparent_o universal_a so_o spread_v over_o the_o world_n with_o credit_n and_o authority_n that_o whole_a mankind_n may_v take_v sufficient_a notice_n of_o she_o and_o her_o doctrine_n for_o the_o embrace_v thereof_o answer_n the_o roman_a be_v a_o particular_a church_n and_o not_o universal_a it_o be_v only_o a_o unsound_a member_n of_o the_o whole_a and_o not_o the_o whole_a rom._n 1._o 6._o s._n paul_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d among_o who_o be_v you_o also_o but_o a_o church_n which_o be_v but_o one_o among_o the_o rest_n can_v be_v the_o whole_a and_o universal_a church_n it_o be_v as_o absurd_a to_o say_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o universal_a church_n as_o to_o affirm_v that_o england_n be_v the_o universal_a world_n if_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v take_v proper_o or_o absolute_o it_o comprehend_v both_o the_o triumphant_a and_o militant_a church_n augustine_n enchir._n cap._n 56._o and_o 61._o covarwias_n resol_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 14._o if_o it_o be_v take_v restrictive_o it_o be_v the_o whole_a church_n militant_a of_o each_o age._n if_o catholic_a be_v take_v for_o that_o which_o be_v orthodoxal_a in_o faith_n and_o which_o hold_v no_o division_n with_o the_o common_a body_n of_o christianity_n according_a to_o which_o notion_n the_o father_n term_n particular_a church_n catholic_a 25._o than_o neither_o be_v this_o title_n proper_a to_o the_o roman_a church_n alone_o neither_o can_v papist_n just_o assume_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_a until_o they_o have_v prove_v their_o faith_n to_o be_v orthodoxal_a and_o justify_v themselves_o from_o be_v the_o author_n of_o discord_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o to_o answer_v that_o which_o follow_v although_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v spread_v over_o sundry_a part_n of_o the_o world_n because_o some_o people_n profess_v the_o roman_a faith_n travail_n or_o reside_v in_o many_o country_n and_o exercise_v their_o religion_n where_o they_o travail_n or_o live_v yet_o this_o
will_v not_o demonstrate_v that_o it_o be_v the_o church_n universal_a for_o both_o the_o jew_n and_o also_o sundry_a christian_n maronites_n which_o be_v no_o romist_n be_v large_o diffuse_v over_o the_o world_n and_o exercise_v their_o religion_n in_o place_n where_o they_o make_v their_o abode_n and_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o presumptuous_a than_o to_o make_v external_a fame_n and_o amplitude_n 39_o which_o be_v thing_n common_a and_o separable_a proper_a note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n and_o upon_o this_o ground_n to_o reject_v and_o censure_v small_a church_n which_o have_v less_o fame_n in_o the_o world_n but_o more_o verity_n jesuit_fw-la most_o manifest_o holy_a in_o all_o kind_n of_o high_a extraordinary_a sanctity_n give_v notorious_a sign_n and_o token_n thereof_o strike_v admiration_n into_o carnal_a man_n that_o be_v not_o altogether_o profane_a and_o diffuse_v abroad_o among_o infidel_n the_o sweet_a odour_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o christian_a name_n answer_n pass_v by_o your_o boast_n of_o manifest_o holy_a in_o all_o kind_n of_o high_a and_o extraordinary_a holiness_n notorious_a strike_v admiration_n etc._n etc._n and_o put_v you_o in_o mind_n of_o solomon_n proverb_n there_o be_v a_o man_n that_o boast_v himself_o to_o be_v rich_a and_o yet_o have_v nothing_o prou._n 13._o 7._o i_o answer_v the_o matter_n first_o you_o must_v be_v advertise_v that_o gregory_n moral_n l._n 33._o c._n 26._o say_v praedicatores_fw-la antichristi_fw-la sanctitatis_fw-la sibi_fw-la speciem_fw-la arrogant_a sed_fw-la tamen_fw-la opera_fw-la iniquitatis_fw-la exercent_fw-la antichrist_n preacher_n arrogate_v unto_o themselves_o a_o show_n of_o holiness_n and_o practice_v the_o work_n of_o iniquity_n this_o will_v be_v verify_v in_o such_o as_o you_o be_v if_o your_o form_n of_o external_a holiness_n be_v not_o conjoin_v with_o holy_a and_o orthodoxal_a doctrine_n you_o must_v therefore_o first_o of_o all_o prove_v your_o doctrine_n to_o be_v orthodoxal_a in_o the_o article_n in_o question_n between_o the_o reform_a church_n and_o you_o before_o your_o miracle_n and_o specious_a holiness_n can_v stand_v you_o in_o any_o stead_n and_o there_o be_v no_o kind_n of_o external_a holiness_n which_o heretic_n have_v not_o pretend_v and_o practise_v in_o show_n before_o man_n second_o your_o own_o friend_n and_o follower_n testify_v that_o your_o church_n have_v be_v for_o many_o age_n notorious_o defile_v with_o the_o enormity_n of_o vice_n some_o of_o they_o say_v 51._o in_o general_a term_n that_o from_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o head_n to_o the_o sole_a of_o the_o foot_n the_o ulcerous_a matter_n of_o enormous_a sin_n have_v defile_v and_o deform_v the_o whole_a body_n and_o state_n of_o christianity_n live_v under_o your_o profession_n other_o affirm_v that_o all_o ecclesiastical_a surius_n and_o christian_a discipline_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n extinguish_v in_o every_o place_n other_o say_v that_o oppression_n 〈◊〉_d rapine_n adultery_n incest_n and_o all_o pestilent_a vice_n do_v confound_v all_o sacred_a and_o profane_a thing_n and_o that_o the_o same_o beat_v s._n peter_n ship_n so_o impetuous_o that_o it_o begin_v to_o hull_v or_o wallow_v upon_o the_o toside_n other_o primo_fw-la that_o vice_n be_v so_o exalt_v and_o multiply_v that_o they_o hardly_o leave_v any_o space_n to_o god_n mercy_n other_o say_v etc._n there_o be_v no_o place_n wherein_o be_v find_v so_o little_a piety_n and_o religion_n as_o in_o those_o people_n which_o dwell_v near_a to_o rome_n other_o say_v inexpertis_fw-la that_o you_o have_v not_o only_o imitate_v and_o match_v but_o surpass_v all_o the_o avarice_n ambition_n lubricitie_n and_o tyranny_n that_o be_v ever_o hear_v of_o among_o the_o heathen_a sundry_a of_o your_o own_o part_n dei_fw-la have_v write_v volume_n contain_v narration_n of_o the_o outrageous_a wickedness_n which_o reign_v among_o 〈◊〉_d they_o have_v style_v your_o grand_a father_n monster_n of_o mankind_n 13._o the_o dregs_n of_o vice_n incarnate_a devil_n &c_n &c_n 5._o one_o say_v 211._o nothing_o be_v more_o luxurious_a covetous_a and_o proud_a than_o priest_n they_o spend_v the_o church_n patrimony_n in_o gluttony_n riot_n upon_o dog_n and_o quean_n and_o all_o their_o preach_n be_v to_o matthew_n paris_n say_v 535._o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o rome_n seek_v not_o to_o make_v people_n devout_a but_o to_o fill_v their_o coffer_n with_o treasure_n they_o study_n not_o to_o win_v soul_n but_o to_o 〈◊〉_d upon_o other_o man_n revenue_n they_o oppress_v the_o godly_a and_o impudent_o usurp_v other_o man_n right_n they_o have_v no_o care_n of_o honesty_n or_o right_n king_n john_n of_o england_n 327_o from_o who_o pope_n innocent_a extort_a forty_o thousand_o mark_n at_o once_o and_o twelve_o thousand_o annual_o to_o absolve_v his_o kingdom_n be_v interdict_v say_v that_o he_o have_v learn_v by_o woeful_a experience_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v ambitious_a beyond_o all_o man_n live_v a_o insatiable_a gulf_n and_o thirster_n after_o money_n and_o ready_a for_o hope_v of_o gain_n like_o wax_n to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d to_o any_o kind_n or_o degree_n of_o 〈◊〉_d aluares_n have_v these_o word_n 〈◊〉_d the_o mystical_a zion_n the_o church_n which_o in_o her_o primitive_a state_n be_v adorn_v of_o her_o spouse_n with_o such_o and_o so_o many_o royal_a grace_n be_v now_o cloud_v and_o eclipse_v with_o the_o black_a mist_n of_o ignorance_n iniquity_n and_o error_n and_o we_o behold_v she_o cast_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o as_o a_o desert_n habit_v of_o virtue_n and_o if_o any_o godly_a people_n remain_v they_o be_v esteem_v as_o arabian_n and_o saracen_n and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n praelat_fw-la the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o army_n of_o devil_n potius_fw-la depraedandis_fw-la &_o spoliandis_fw-la &_o scandalizandis_fw-la hominibus_fw-la quam_fw-la lucris_fw-la animarum_fw-la operam_fw-la dantes_fw-la they_o rather_o labour_v to_o rob_v spoil_n and_o scandalize_v man_n than_o to_o win_v soul_n honorius_n angustodonensis_fw-la scelere_fw-la who_o live_v in_o the_o year_n 1120._o have_v these_o word_n turn_v thou_o to_o the_o citizen_n of_o babylon_n and_o observe_v what_o manner_n of_o people_n they_o be_v and_o by_o what_o street_n they_o walk_v come_v hither_o to_o the_o top_n of_o the_o mountain_n that_o thou_o may_v behold_v all_o the_o habitation_n of_o the_o damn_a city_n look_v upon_o her_o prince_n and_o judge_n pope_n cardinal_n prelate_n the_o very_a seat_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v place_v in_o they_o all_o day_n they_o be_v intent_n to_o evil_a 〈◊〉_d occupy_v without_o satiety_n in_o the_o work_n of_o iniquity_n they_o not_o only_a themselves_o act_n but_o instruct_v other_o to_o flagitious_a wickedness_n they_o make_v port-sale_n of_o thing_n sacred_a they_o purchase_v that_o which_o be_v wicked_a and_o labour_n with_o all_o their_o might_n that_o they_o may_v not_o descend_v alone_o to_o hell_n turn_v thyself_o to_o the_o clergy_n and_o thou_o shall_v see_v in_o they_o the_o tent_n of_o the_o beast_n they_o neglect_v god_n service_n they_o be_v slave_n to_o worldly_a lucre_n they_o defile_v their_o priesthood_n through_o uncleanness_n they_o seduce_v the_o people_n by_o hypocrisy_n they_o deny_v god_n by_o evil_a work_n they_o abandon_v all_o the_o scripture_n appoint_v for_o man_n salvation_n they_o lay_v snare_n all_o manner_n of_o way_n to_o ruin_v the_o people_n and_o be_v blind_a guide_n go_v before_o the_o blind_a to_o perdition_n contemplate_v also_o the_o society_n of_o monk_n and_o thou_o shall_v discern_v in_o they_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o beast_n by_o feign_a profession_n they_o mock_v god_n and_o provoke_v his_o wrath_n they_o betrample_v their_o rule_n with_o vile_a manner_n they_o deceive_v the_o world_n by_o their_o habit_n etc._n etc._n many_o of_o they_o be_v devote_a to_o gluttony_n and_o sensual_a appetite_n they_o putrify_v in_o the_o filth_n of_o uncleanness_n behold_v the_o habitation_n of_o nun_n and_o thou_o shall_v observe_v in_o they_o a_o bride-chamber_n prepare_v for_o the_o beast_n these_o from_o their_o tender_a year_n learn_v leaudnesse_n they_o associate_v many_o to_o they_o to_o accumulate_v their_o damnation_n they_o make_v haste_n to_o be_v veil_v that_o they_o may_v more_o free_o let_v loose_v the_o reins_n of_o luxury_n they_o be_v prostitute_v worse_a than_o any_o harlot_n like_o a_o insatiable_a gulf_n they_o be_v never_o satisfy_v with_o the_o dung_n of_o uncleanness_n these_o ensnare_v the_o soul_n of_o young_a man_n and_o she_o among_o they_o which_o transcend_v her_o fellow_n in_o leaudnesse_n bear_v away_o the_o bell_n desinat_fw-la three_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v many_o passage_n in_o the_o very_a course_n of_o doctrine_n to_o destroy_v or_o corrupt_v holiness_n for_o to_o omit_v their_o gross_a superstition_n pharisaical_a tradition_n and_o other_o impiety_n against_o god_n first_o they_o deprive_v people_n of_o the_o read_n and_o hear_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v a_o principal_a mean_n to_o destroy_v vice_n and_o kindle_v
virtue_n 5._o deut._n 31._o 21._o second_o their_o doctrine_n of_o pardon_n minister_v daily_a occasion_n of_o intolerable_a wickedness_n for_o although_o their_o schoolman_n plaster_v the_o same_o with_o subtle_a distinction_n yet_o the_o people_n entertain_v they_o according_a to_o the_o outward_a letter_n and_o practise_v according_o three_o by_o some_o part_n of_o their_o doctrine_n they_o 〈◊〉_d people_n to_o commit_v sin_n equivocation_n be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o perjury_n to_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o depose_v prince_n and_o take_v away_o their_o 〈◊〉_d in_o case_n of_o heresy_n be_v a_o plain_a doctrine_n of_o 〈◊〉_d worse_o than_o murder_n and_o if_o the_o pope_n may_v command_v murder_n why_o may_v he_o not_o also_o command_v adultery_n theft_n and_o blasphemy_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n to_o dispense_v with_o oath_n 〈◊〉_d be_v perilous_a and_o pernitio_fw-la we_o to_o the_o safety_n of_o mankind_n make_v way_n to_o all_o kind_n of_o fraud_n and_o injustice_n if_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v so_o apparent_o and_o infinite_o holy_a why_o do_v it_o open_o maintain_v stew_n and_o receive_v yearly_a tribute_n '_o and_o part_n stake_n with_o harlot_n and_o wherefore_o be_v sanctuary_n the_o harbour_n and_o den_n of_o assisines_n and_o other_o enormous_a delinquent_n tolerate_v and_o support_v by_o this_o church_n it_o be_v a_o monstrous_a doctrine_n which_o be_v hatch_v by_o pope_n vrban_n excommunicatorum_fw-la and_o approve_v by_o baronius_n contigerit_fw-la that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v judge_v murderer_n which_o slay_v excommunicate_a person_n the_o exemption_n of_o 〈◊〉_d from_o be_v try_v in_o cause_n criminal_a before_o christian_a magistrate_n be_v a_o doctrine_n which_o make_v way_n to_o most_o outrageous_a offence_n gulielmus_fw-la nubrigensis_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 16._o etc._n the_o judge_n complain_v that_o there_o be_v many_o robbery_n and_o rape_n and_o murder_n to_o the_o number_n of_o a_o hundred_o then_o present_o commit_v within_o the_o realm_n by_o ecclesiastical_a person_n upon_o presumption_n of_o exemption_n from_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o law_n we_o can_v be_v persuade_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v holy_a in_o such_o high_a and_o extrordinarie_a manner_n as_o our_o adversary_n boast_v because_o the_o great_a clerk_n of_o that_o society_n undertake_v the_o defence_n of_o such_o impiety_n as_o be_v detestable_a in_o nature_n and_o condemn_v by_o the_o light_n of_o common_a reason_n garnets_n powder-plot_n have_v many_o patron_n cardinal_n baronius_n commend_v to_o prestitit_fw-la the_o sky_n young_a henry_n the_o emperor_n son_n for_o rebel_a against_o his_o natural_a father_n for_o depose_v imprison_a and_o bring_v he_o with_o sorrow_n to_o the_o grave_n what_o turk_n or_o savage_a will_v be_v the_o encomiast_n of_o such_o unnatural_a and_o enormous_a villainy_n jesuit_fw-la most_o 〈◊〉_d apostolical_a 〈◊〉_d a_o most_o glorious_a succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n from_o the_o apostle_n famous_a in_o all_o monument_n of_o history_n and_o antiquity_n who_o be_v never_o note_v as_o deliver_v 〈◊〉_d doctrine_n the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o in_o which_o proof_n that_o these_o property_n agree_v to_o the_o roman_a and_o be_v want_v in_o the_o protestant_a church_n i_o will_v not_o enlarge_v myself_o as_o i_o otherwise_o may_v as_o well_o not_o to_o weary_v your_o majesty_n as_o also_o not_o to_o seem_v to_o diffide_v the_o matter_n be_v most_o clear_a of_o your_o majesty_n judgement_n wherefore_o it_o be_v more_o than_o clear_a that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a apostolic_a church_n by_o who_o tradition_n christian_a religion_n have_v be_v be_v and_o shall_v be_v ever_o continue_v from_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o world_n end_n answer_n first_o if_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n do_v want_v the_o life_n and_o soul_n of_o apostolical_a succession_n to_o wit_n apostolical_a doctrine_n local_a and_o titular_a succession_n be_v only_o a_o pharisaical_a cloak_n or_o a_o paint_a wall_n act_v 23.3_o and_o common_a to_o caiaphas_n paul_n samosaten_v nestorius_n and_o to_o many_o other_o notorious_a heretic_n habent_fw-la second_o the_o visible_a succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o say_a church_n from_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o most_o glorious_a and_o famous_a by_o the_o report_n of_o all_o monument_n of_o history_n and_o antiquity_n 〈◊〉_d but_o the_o same_o have_v be_v notorious_o distain_v in_o latter_a time_n by_o simoniacal_a entrance_n of_o pope_n and_o prelate_n by_o schysmaticall_a intrusion_n and_o by_o commutation_n of_o the_o form_n of_o election_n of_o pastor_n appoint_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o exercise_v in_o the_o primative_a church_n and_o whereas_o the_o adversary_n contend_v that_o roman_a bishop_n and_o pastor_n have_v succession_n of_o doctrine_n because_o ecclesiastical_a history_n be_v silent_a in_o note_v latter_a pope_n for_o deliver_v contrary_a doctrine_n the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o both_o the_o illation_n itself_o and_o the_o antecedent_n or_o ground_n of_o the_o illation_n be_v false_a first_o it_o be_v inconsequent_a to_o inserre_v negative_o from_o humane_a history_n and_o to_o say_v history_n be_v silent_a and_o therefore_o no_o such_o matter_n be_v our_o saviour_n prove_v the_o pharisee_n and_o sadducee_n to_o be_v errant_n because_o their_o present_a doctrine_n be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o have_v the_o pharisee_n or_o sadducee_n reply_v that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v the_o same_o which_o moses_n &_o the_o prophet_n teach_v because_o they_o have_v snccession_n and_o history_n be_v silent_a when_o they_o change_v the_o ancient_a faith_n they_o have_v justify_v themselves_o upon_o as_o good_a ground_n as_o papal_n do_v second_o it_o be_v false_a which_o this_o disputer_n vent_v so_o confident_o that_o history_n and_o ancient_a monument_n be_v altogether_o silent_a of_o the_o innovation_n which_o be_v make_v by_o latter_a pope_n and_o we_o be_v able_a as_o in_o due_a place_n it_o shall_v appear_v to_o produce_v testimony_n of_o history_n to_o the_o contrary_n jesvit_n 2._o argument_n protestant_n have_v the_o holy_a scripture_n deliver_v unto_o they_o by_o and_o from_o the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a church_n but_o they_o receive_v they_o from_o no_o other_o church_n than_o the_o roman_a ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n answer_n this_o sillogisme_n be_v peccant_a in_o form_n and_o both_o the_o proposition_n be_v affirmative_a in_o the_o second_o figure_n which_o i_o note_v the_o rather_o because_o the_o adversary_n at_o the_o end_n of_o his_o argument_n cry_v victoria_n say_v a_o argument_n convict_v and_o unanswerable_a i_o must_v therefore_o reduce_v the_o same_o to_o a_o lawful_a form_n and_o then_o answer_v that_o church_n by_o and_o from_o which_o the_o protestant_n receive_v the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n the_o protestant_n receive_v the_o scripture_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a church_n to_o the_o only_a holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n first_o if_o this_o argument_n be_v convict_v and_o unanswerable_a as_o the_o jesuit_n boast_v than_o these_o which_o follow_v be_v such_o that_o from_o which_o the_o russian_n receive_v the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n the_o russian_n receive_v the_o scripture_n from_o the_o greek_a church_n ergo_fw-la the_o greek_a church_n be_v the_o only_a holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n also_o that_o church_n from_o which_o the_o apostle_n receive_v the_o scripture_n be_v the_o true_a church_n the_o apostle_n receive_v the_o scripture_n from_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n govern_v by_o the_o pharisee_n ergo_fw-la the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n govern_v by_o the_o pharisee_n be_v the_o true_a church_n the_o delivery_n of_o the_o text_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v common_a to_o the_o true_a and_o corrupt_a church_n and_o not_o proper_a to_o the_o only_a holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o synagogue_n which_o be_v a_o corrupt_a church_n at_o the_o time_n of_o our_o saviour_n advent_n yet_o by_o the_o special_a providence_n of_o god_n preserve_v and_o deliver_v the_o text_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n rom._n 3.2_o and_o s._n agustine_n 26._o testify_v of_o the_o jew_n that_o they_o be_v library_n keeper_n 7._o to_o christian_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n and_o s._n hierom_n say_v 141._o that_o the_o hebrew_n do_v not_o corrupt_v the_o text_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n also_o the_o donatist_n and_o novatian_n deliver_v the_o incorrupt_a text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n to_o their_o follower_n second_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o former_a argument_n have_v another_o defect_n the_o text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n may_v be_v deliver_v by_o a_o particular_a church_n which_o be_v but_o a_o member_n of_o the_o universal_a and_o therefore_o it_o be_v
and_o magnify_v the_o ancient_a oecumeniall_a counsel_n affirm_v that_o they_o honour_v they_o as_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n yet_o when_o they_o make_v against_o they_o they_o regard_v they_o no_o more_o chalcedon_n as_o one_o of_o their_o own_o part_n affirm_v 〈◊〉_d than_o a_o covent_n of_o woman_n prattle_v and_o chat_n in_o a_o common_a bath_n stove_n or_o weaver_n shop_n and_o this_o be_v apparent_a by_o their_o 〈◊〉_d or_o falsify_v the_o counsel_n of_o nice_a 〈◊〉_d constantinople_n 〈◊〉_d and_o chalcedon_n 28._o when_o the_o same_o equal_a the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n or_o other_o patriarchall_a sea_n to_o the_o roman_a or_o forbid_v the_o imposition_n of_o single_a life_n upon_o the_o clergy_n synod_n as_o also_o by_o the_o counsel_n of_o basill_n and_o constance_n decree_a that_o the_o pope_n sentence_n be_v fallible_a cardinal_n cusanus_fw-la treat_v of_o general_a counsel_n deliver_v these_o ten_o position_n follow_v first_o that_o a_o perfect_a or_o complete_a general_a council_n consist_v of_o all_o the_o patriarch_n ecclesiae_fw-la and_o prime_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n second_o that_o a_o council_n which_o be_v celebrate_v by_o the_o roman_a pontife_n and_o those_o which_o be_v subject_a to_o he_o only_o or_o exclude_v other_o be_v a_o particular_a council_n ecclesiae_fw-la three_o a_o general_a council_n may_v be_v celebrate_v although_o the_o pope_n refuse_v to_o join_v and_o concur_v by_o his_o presence_n and_o consent_n synodi_fw-la four_o all_o which_o meet_v in_o counsel_n aught_o to_o have_v free_a audience_n and_o liberty_n orderly_o to_o debate_v and_o determine_v matter_n in_o question_n etc._n five_o whatsoever_o must_v oblige_v as_o divine_v upon_o the_o determination_n of_o counsel_n aught_o to_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n synodus_fw-la six_o no_o counsel_n be_v legitimate_a wherein_o private_a respect_n be_v maintain_v under_o pretext_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n vulneraret_fw-la seven_o the_o roman_a bishop_n have_v not_o that_o power_n which_o many_o flatterer_n heap_v upon_o he_o to_o wit_n that_o he_o alone_o be_v to_o determine_v and_o other_o only_o to_o consult_v or_o advise_v consulentibus_fw-la eight_o it_o be_v without_o all_o question_n that_o a_o general_a council_n proper_o take_v be_v both_o superior_a to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o patriarch_n and_o also_o to_o the_o roman_a pope_n 〈◊〉_d nine_o experience_n of_o thing_n do_v manifest_a that_o a_o plenary_a universal_a council_n may_v be_v deficient_a and_o we_o read_v that_o many_o counsel_n lawful_o assemble_v have_v err_v 14._o ten_o while_o we_o defend_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o universal_a bishop_n ecclesiae_fw-la but_o only_o the_o first_o bishop_n over_o other_o and_o while_o we_o ground_n the_o power_n of_o sacred_a counsel_n upon_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a assembly_n and_o not_o upon_o the_o pope_n we_o maintain_v truth_n and_o give_v to_o every_o one_o his_o due_a honour_n and_o then_o conclude_v the_o former_a position_n the_o cardinal_n say_v concordarent_fw-la i_o observe_v little_a or_o nothing_o in_o ancient_a monument_n which_o agree_v not_o to_o these_o my_o assertion_n with_o this_o cardinal_n agree_v many_o other_o famous_a papist_n occam_n panormitan_n signif_n almain_n vesp._n cassander_n ferus_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o among_o the_o rest_n occam_n deliver_v these_o position_n first_o that_o all_o general_a counsel_n be_v inferior_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n quodcunque_fw-la and_o that_o when_o s._n gregory_n say_v that_o he_o honour_v the_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n like_v as_o the_o four_o evangelist_n this_o must_v be_v understand_v not_o of_o equality_n but_o of_o similitude_n etc._n matth._n 5._o 48._o second_o counsel_n be_v not_o call_v general_a because_o they_o be_v congregat_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a pope_n convocatur_fw-la and_o that_o if_o prince_n and_o layman_n please_v they_o may_v be_v present_a and_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o matter_n treat_v of_o in_o general_a counsel_n interest_n three_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n as_o it_o make_v not_o man_n holy_a so_o it_o confer_v not_o infallibility_n of_o judgement_n fidem_fw-la four_o a_o general_a council_n or_o that_o congregation_n which_o be_v common_o repute_v a_o general_a council_n by_o the_o world_n may_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n fidem_fw-la joh._n ferus_fw-la comment_v upon_o the_o act_n chap._n 15._o compare_v the_o apostle_n council_n with_o modern_a and_o say_v possit_fw-la in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o conscience_n it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o say_v we_o will_v and_o command_v but_o you_o must_v consider_v in_o what_o manner_n the_o apostle_n deal_v in_o their_o assembly_n they_o come_v together_o in_o simplicity_n of_o heart_n seek_v only_a god_n glory_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o other_o no_o marvel_v therefore_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v in_o this_o council_n but_o our_o meeting_n be_v in_o another_o manner_n namely_o with_o great_a pomp_n and_o seek_v ourselves_o and_o promise_v to_o ourselves_o licence_n upon_o fullness_n of_o power_n to_o do_v any_o thing_n and_o this_o be_v so_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o approve_v such_o assembly_n see_v therefore_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o these_o learned_a papist_n latter_a counsel_n celebrate_v by_o the_o mere_a and_o absolute_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v neither_o universal_a videmus_fw-la nor_o of_o infallible_a judgement_n and_o as_o experience_n testify_v papal_a counsel_n be_v neither_o free_a nor_o proceed_v in_o debate_v and_o decide_v matter_n controvert_v according_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n examinare_fw-la and_o that_o of_o late_a year_n and_o especial_o since_o pope_n gregory_n the_o seven_o they_o have_v whole_o intend_v their_o own_o privacy_n excitent_fw-la it_o be_v a_o malicious_a censure_n which_o this_o lojolist_n cast_v upon_o the_o protestant_n in_o charge_v they_o with_o fundamental_a heresy_n for_o oppose_v the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o such_o counsel_n and_o consequent_o with_o deiect_v the_o foundation_n of_o unity_n in_o god_n church_n protestant_n have_v always_o desire_v a_o lawful_a general_a council_n for_o the_o conclude_a of_o difference_n in_o religion_n ecclesiae_fw-la and_o they_o be_v most_o ready_a and_o resolute_a to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o determination_n thereof_o statim_fw-la and_o they_o yield_v the_o same_o honour_n and_o authority_n to_o all_o such_o counsel_n which_o the_o ancient_a church_n in_o the_o day_n of_o constantine_n the_o great_a theodosius_n and_o martianus_n and_o which_o s._n augustine_n do_v 739._o yea_o which_o the_o more_o impartial_a roman_n themselves_o in_o precedent_a age_n have_v do_v but_o the_o present_a papalls_n will_v not_o endure_v a_o lawful_a and_o impartial_a council_n and_o unless_o themselves_o may_v be_v both_o accuser_n and_o judge_n concilium_fw-la and_o proceed_v as_o their_o forefather_n the_o pharisee_n do_v against_o the_o apostle_n determine_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o model_n of_o their_o own_o cabala_n they_o will_v admit_v no_o trial_n by_o counsel_n 14._o nor_o any_o other_o mean_n of_o pacification_n for_o restore_v the_o common_a unity_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n jesuit_fw-la three_o their_o deny_v of_o the_o primacy_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o etc._n his_o successor_n the_o foundation_n which_o christ_n lay_v of_o his_o church_n necessary_a for_o the_o perpetual_a government_n thereof_o matth._n 16._o 18._o answer_n protestant's_n deny_v not_o the_o primacy_n of_o s._n peter_n but_o they_o yield_v unto_o he_o both_o as_o he_o be_v a_o apostle_n primacy_n of_o spiritual_a authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o universal_a church_n matth._n 28.20_o joh._n 20.21_o and_o also_o respective_o to_o the_o other_o apostle_n which_o be_v his_o compeer_n and_o equal_n 〈◊〉_d in_o regard_n of_o all_o apostolical_a authority_n primacy_n of_o call_v order_n grace_n gift_n est_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o the_o place_n of_o saint_n matthew_n chap._n 16.18_o prove_v not_o saint_n peter_n to_o have_v be_v a_o visible_a monarch_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n first_o our_o saviour_n affirm_v not_o plain_o and_o literal_o that_o he_o will_v build_v his_o church_n upon_o he_o but_o upon_o the_o rock_n which_o he_o confess_v alij_fw-la verse_n 16_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d upon_o this_o rock_n and_o not_o upon_o this_o peter_n non_fw-la dictum_fw-la est_fw-la illi_fw-la tu_fw-la es_fw-la petra_n sed_fw-la tu_fw-la es_fw-la petrus_n petra_n autem_fw-la erat_fw-la christus_fw-la it_o be_v not_o say_v unto_o he_o thou_o be_v the_o rock_n but_o thou_o be_v peter_n for_o the_o rock_n be_v christ._n august_n retract_v lib._n 1._o cap._n 21._o second_o if_o he_o have_v affirm_v express_o that_o he_o will_v build_v his_o church_n upon_o he_o yet_o he_o say_v not_o exclusive_o that_o he_o will_v build_v the_o same_o only_a upon_o he_o but_o in_o other_o place_n he_o conjoin_v the_o
upon_o the_o doctrine_n and_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v far_o more_o unreasonable_a than_o to_o forsake_v that_o which_o be_v exhibit_v by_o a_o dead_a and_o dumb_a picture_n three_o your_o counterfeit_a athanasius_n be_v a_o child_n of_o darkness_n not_o place_v at_o all_o in_o the_o work_n of_o athanasius_n by_o yourselves_o read_v the_o several_a impression_n of_o this_o author_n at_o rome_n paris_n basill_n etc._n etc._n anno_fw-la 1520_o 1555_o 1564_o 1572_o 1581._o 1582_o 1598._o 1608_o and_o there_o be_v no_o such_o work_n of_o he_o to_o be_v find_v and_o therefore_o harding_n turrian_n gretsar_n and_o yourself_o abuse_v the_o world_n in_o allead_v such_o bastardly_a stuff_n jesuit_fw-la and_o therefore_o the_o danger_n of_o ignorant_a people_n err_a by_o jmage_n be_v without_o reason_n so_o much_o insist_v upon_o by_o protestant_n their_o english_a translation_n be_v as_o i_o have_v show_v a_o more_o dangerous_a block_n for_o fool_n to_o stumble_v at_o and_o so_o fall_v into_o damnable_a error_n if_o they_o presume_v that_o by_o diligent_a instruction_n they_o may_v and_o will_v have_v we_o think_v that_o they_o do_v preserve_v their_o people_n from_o that_o error_n why_o shall_v they_o not_o think_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v so_o potent_a with_o her_o child_n can_v keep_v they_o from_o the_o foolish_a error_n of_o attribute_v life_n and_o divinity_n unto_o dead_a and_o dumb_a image_n and_o that_o she_o will_v so_o do_v be_v so_o strict_o command_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n to_o use_v her_o great_a diligence_n etc._n in_o this_o point_n that_o ignorant_a people_n fall_v not_o into_o error_n by_o any_o image_n which_o otherwise_o have_v many_o profit_n and_o utility_n answer_n it_o be_v possible_a for_o ignorant_a people_n notwithstanding_o admonition_n to_o worship_v image_n not_o think_v actual_o of_o the_o prototype_n representatam_fw-la and_o in_o this_o case_n their_o worship_n be_v terminate_v in_o the_o very_a image_n but_o it_o be_v needless_a for_o we_o to_o insist_v upon_o the_o matter_n of_o abuse_n for_o if_o the_o thing_n itself_o to_o wit_n adoration_n of_o image_n be_v unlawful_a than_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o deliver_v precept_n and_o caution_n to_o moderate_a excess_n in_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o but_o that_o adoration_n of_o image_n be_v unlawful_a it_o have_v former_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n and_o the_o perpetual_a practice_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n 66._o and_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o certain_a age_n which_o neither_o worship_v image_n and_o which_o reject_v in_o a_o manner_n all_o use_n of_o they_o in_o religion_n 17._o jesuit_fw-la about_o which_o i_o will_v not_o enlarge_v myself_o but_o only_o mention_v some_o of_o they_o the_o first_o be_v a_o easy_a and_o compendious_a way_n of_o instruction_n in_o which_o respect_n they_o be_v term_v by_o s._n gregory_n the_o book_n of_o the_o unlearned_a and_o as_o another_o theod._n gregory_n say_v the_o silent_a picture_n speak_v in_o the_o wall_n and_o profit_v very_o much_o answer_n this_o reason_n whether_o it_o be_v true_a or_o false_a serve_v only_o to_o commend_v the_o historical_a use_n of_o image_n and_o yet_o some_o learned_a papist_n reject_v this_o kind_n of_o teach_v by_o image_n and_o picture_n among_o which_o durand_n 4._o say_v ei_o autem_fw-la quod_fw-la dictum_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la imagine_v sunt_fw-la laicorum_fw-la literae_fw-la obuiat_fw-la illud_fw-la euangelij_fw-la habent_fw-la mosen_n &_o prophetas_fw-la the_o sentence_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o have_v moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n let_v they_o hear_v they_o be_v repugnant_a to_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v by_o some_o image_n be_v layman_n book_n jesuit_fw-la the_o second_o be_v to_o increase_v in_o man_n that_o keep_v and_o honour_v they_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o his_o saint_n which_o effect_n s._n chrisostome_n experience_v as_o he_o testify_v say_v i_o lolove_v a_o picture_n of_o melt_a wax_n full_a of_o piety_n and_o s._n 53._o gregory_n the_o great_a say_v they_o inflame_v man_n that_o behold_v they_o in_o the_o love_n of_o their_o lord_n and_o saviour_n the_o three_o be_v to_o move_v and_o incite_v man_n to_o the_o imitation_n of_o the_o virtue_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n which_o utility_n s._n basill_n do_v declare_v and_o high_o esteem_v in_o his_o sermon_n of_o the_o forty_o martyr_n martyr_n and_o example_n may_v be_v bring_v of_o man_n reclaim_v by_o sight_n of_o godly_a image_n even_o in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o sinful_a affection_n the_o four_o be_v to_o stay_v our_o thought_n upon_o christ_n and_o his_o passion_n that_o our_o imagination_n in_o prayer_n may_v not_o so_o easy_o wander_v which_o use_n of_o image_n catholic_n in_o their_o devotion_n do_v often_o experience_n final_o that_o in_o his_o image_n we_o may_v honour_n christ_n the_o honour_n of_o the_o image_n redound_v to_o the_o original_n and_o who_o crown_v the_o king_n image_n honour_v the_o king_n who_o image_n it_o be_v say_v s._n ambrose_n in_o which_o kind_a 119._o memorable_a be_v the_o devotion_n of_o our_o victorious_a and_o religious_a king_n canutus_n who_o take_v the_o diadem_n that_o he_o use_v to_o wear_v on_o his_o own_o head_n and_o there_o with_o crown_v a_o image_n of_o christ_n crucify_v which_o in_o his_o day_n be_v devout_o reserve_v in_o the_o church_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o s._n paul_n in_o winchester_n and_o afterward_o will_v never_o have_v any_o crown_n come_v on_o his_o head_n out_o of_o humble_a reverence_n to_o his_o crucify_a lord_n answer_n it_o be_v again_o to_o little_a purpose_n to_o examine_v the_o place_n of_o the_o father_n here_o produce_v concern_v the_o utility_n which_o may_v follow_v upon_o the_o visible_a aspect_n of_o picture_n &_o image_n for_o all_o these_o testimony_n serve_v only_o to_o commend_v historical_a use_n but_o they_o prove_v not_o adoration_n also_o the_o utility_n of_o image_n mention_v by_o they_o be_v speak_v only_o according_a to_o their_o humane_a opinion_n but_o that_o image_n by_o divine_a institution_n have_v such_o utility_n or_o that_o god_n almighty_a have_v promise_v in_o his_o word_n any_o such_o effect_n and_o blessing_n unto_o they_o be_v not_o affirm_v by_o the_o father_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v warrant_v by_o divine_a revelation_n s._n ambrose_n serm._n 10._o in_o psalm_n 118._o etc._n treat_v of_o the_o lively_a image_n of_o god_n to_o wit_n just_a person_n poor_a afflict_a people_n the_o member_n of_o christ_n these_o image_n he_o exhort_v we_o to_o honour_n illustrate_v his_o doctrine_n by_o a_o humane_a similitude_n which_o be_v he_o that_o crown_v the_o image_n of_o the_o emperor_n honour_v he_o who_o image_n he_o crown_v etc._n etc._n then_o he_o apply_v the_o former_a similitude_n say_v etc._n by_o honour_v the_o lively_a image_n of_o christ_n we_o worship_v christ_n himself_o but_o speak_v of_o dead_a statue_n and_o picture_n he_o add_v gentiles_n lignum_fw-la adorant_fw-la quia_fw-la dei_fw-la imaginem_fw-la putant_fw-la sed_fw-la invisibilis_fw-la dei_fw-la imago_fw-la non_fw-la in_o 〈◊〉_d est_fw-la quod_fw-la videtur_fw-la gentile_n adore_v wood_n think_v it_o the_o image_n of_o god_n but_o the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n be_v in_o that_o which_o be_v invisible_a and_o not_o in_o it_o which_o be_v see_v as_o for_o your_o story_n of_o canutus_n the_o first_o danish_n king_n reign_v in_o england_n wherewith_o you_o close_v up_o your_o question_n of_o image_n you_o name_v no_o author_n that_o so_o we_o may_v have_v examine_v the_o quality_n of_o canutus_n his_o action_n and_o if_o the_o same_o happen_v according_a to_o your_o report_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o ancient_a because_o it_o be_v a_o thousand_o year_n and_o more_o after_o christ_n reign_v neither_o be_v the_o consequence_n necessary_a that_o because_o he_o place_v his_o crown_n upon_o a_o image_n of_o the_o crucifix_n therefore_o he_o worship_v the_o image_n ligno_fw-la for_o jacob_n pour_v oil_n upon_o the_o top_n of_o a_o pillar_n gen._n 28.18_o yet_o his_o oblation_n be_v make_v only_o to_o the_o deity_n and_o not_o to_o the_o pillar_n last_o let_v it_o be_v observe_v that_o our_o adversary_n have_v manifest_v wondrous_a weakness_n in_o this_o romish_a article_n concern_v worship_n of_o image_n for_o he_o have_v not_o throughout_o his_o whole_a disputation_n produce_v one_o plain_a text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n or_o one_o clear_a sentence_n of_o antiquity_n prove_v the_o necessity_n or_o lawfulness_n of_o iconolatrie_n wherefore_o i_o conclude_v that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v destitute_a of_o all_o divine_a authority_n write_v or_o unwritten_a and_o consequent_o that_o they_o be_v impostor_n which_o impose_v the_o same_o as_o a_o necessary_a duty_n upon_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n the_o second_o and_o three_o point_n praying_n and_o offer_v oblation_n to_o the_o b._n virgin_n mary_n worship_v and_o invocation_n
probability_n be_v allege_v in_o favour_n of_o real_a presence_n by_o consubstantiation_n than_o for_o transubstantiation_n last_o the_o mystical_a union_n between_o christ_n and_o his_o member_n be_v ineffable_a and_o the_o manner_n incomprehensible_a and_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n teach_v a_o real_a donation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o a_o mystical_a conjunction_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o the_o soul_n of_o faithful_a receiver_n and_o that_o dead_a and_o corruptible_a creature_n can_v be_v a_o mean_n and_o instrument_n hereof_o be_v a_o great_a mystery_n of_o godliness_n incredible_a to_o profane_a person_n and_o therefore_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o believe_v this_o doctrine_n may_v just_o require_v that_o this_o mystery_n shall_v not_o be_v manifest_v before_o infidel_n and_o other_o infirm_a christian_n until_o they_o be_v first_o instruct_v in_o the_o rudiment_n of_o christianity_n jesuit_fw-la yea_o the_o father_n do_v not_o fear_v to_o declare_v unto_o catechuman_n this_o sacrament_n so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v commemorative_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o passion_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o treatise_n of_o saint_n augustine_n upon_o saint_n john_n make_v before_o catechuman_n out_o of_o which_o treatise_n protestant_n for_o their_o mere_a commemorative_n presence_n allege_v many_o sentence_n to_o little_a purpose_n for_o he_o there_o explicate_v spiritual_a manducation_n by_o faith_n and_o he_o exclude_v the_o gross_a imagination_n of_o eat_v christ_n body_n in_o his_o proper_a shape_n tear_v it_o in_o piece_n with_o the_o tooth_n but_o deny_v not_o yea_o rather_o insinuate_v another_o kind_n of_o spiritual_a manducation_n not_o only_o by_o faith_n but_o by_o real_a sumption_n though_o to_o conceal_v the_o mystery_n from_o catechuman_n he_o speak_v not_o so_o clear_o thereof_o wherefore_o as_o the_o palm_n tree_n the_o heavy_a the_o weight_n be_v that_o be_v lay_v upon_o it_o the_o more_o it_o rise_v upward_o as_o it_o be_v joy_v in_o difficulty_n so_o a_o true_a catholic_a christian_n feel_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n many_o seem_a absurdity_n that_o press_v carnal_a imagination_n to_o the_o ground_n grow_v thereby_o more_o strong_a to_o believe_v it_o embrace_v these_o difficulty_n as_o manifest_a sign_n that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v believe_v by_o the_o primitive_a apostolical_a church_n on_o the_o other_o side_n protestant_n find_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n by_o faith_n to_o be_v devoid_a of_o such_o difficulty_n may_v by_o the_o very_a lightness_n thereof_o suspect_v it_o be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o father_n conceal_v from_o jnfidell_n as_o more_o absurd_a to_o humane_a imagination_n than_o any_o other_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n answer_n you_o object_n that_o the_o father_n declare_v to_o catechuman_n that_o be_v to_o novice_n in_o christianity_n a_o commemorative_a presence_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n but_o not_o a_o corporal_a presence_n by_o transubstantiation_n and_o from_o hence_o you_o will_v infer_v that_o the_o father_n hold_v two_o kind_n of_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o eucharist_n the_o one_o sole_o spiritual_a by_o intellectual_a apprehension_n the_o other_o corporal_a by_o real_a sumption_n of_o christ_n body_n into_o the_o mouth_n and_o stomach_n of_o the_o receiver_n and_o you_o pretend_v that_o s._n augustine_n be_v of_o this_o judgement_n but_o you_o must_v remember_v that_o you_o be_v not_o now_o to_o deal_v with_o adversary_n which_o will_v credit_n your_o bare_a word_n and_o proof_n you_o have_v none_o therefore_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o the_o father_n teach_v no_o other_o kind_n of_o presence_n to_o they_o which_o be_v baptize_v and_o receive_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n than_o to_o catechuman_n or_o unbaptised_a christian_n although_o they_o instruct_v the_o one_o sort_n more_o full_o than_o the_o other_o second_o s._n augustine_n teach_v not_o that_o christ_n body_n be_v receive_v invisible_o insensible_o and_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o spirit_n by_o the_o mouth_n and_o stomach_n of_o each_o communicant_a but_o he_o teach_v only_o two_o kind_n of_o manducation_n in_o the_o sacrament_n one_o both_o corporal_a and_o spiritual_a wherein_o the_o body_n of_o man_n receive_v the_o external_a element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o the_o soul_n receive_v the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n sacramenti_fw-la the_o other_o corporeal_a only_a wherein_o the_o receiver_n partake_v the_o outward_a sign_n and_o not_o the_o thing_n signify_v panem_fw-la domini_fw-la non_fw-la panem_fw-la dominum_fw-la fuerit_fw-la the_o visible_a sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n etc._n but_o not_o his_o very_a body_n and_o he_o affirm_v not_o upon_o the_o six_o chapter_n of_o s._n john_n that_o a_o malicious_a sinner_n continue_v such_o receive_v the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n three_o protestant_n believe_v not_o only_o a_o commemorative_n but_o also_o a_o exhibitive_a presence_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v together_o with_o the_o outward_a sign_n according_a to_o the_o manner_n former_o declare_v pag._n 405._o and_o this_o presence_n be_v mystical_a and_o such_o as_o may_v seem_v incredible_a to_o unbelcever_n because_o of_o sundry_a difficulty_n repugnant_a to_o common_a sense_n to_o wit_n that_o christ_n flesh_n by_o the_o unspeakable_a power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v be_v after_o a_o sort_n incorporate_v into_o the_o soul_n and_o that_o corruptible_a and_o dead_a creature_n shall_v be_v elevate_v and_o make_v effectual_a instrument_n to_o apply_v and_o communicate_v jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o death_n to_o faithful_a communicant_n jesvit_n 2._o consideration_n this_o consideration_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o difficulty_n object_v against_o this_o mystery_n which_o be_v such_o as_o a_o christian_a in_o honour_n shall_v neglect_v they_o for_o if_o it_o be_v the_o part_n of_o a_o prudent_a and_o intelligent_a man_n not_o to_o permit_v imagination_n to_o prevail_v against_o his_o reason_n what_o a_o disgrace_n be_v it_o for_o a_o christian_a that_o his_o faith_n shall_v be_v conquer_v by_o these_o kind_n of_o difficulty_n for_o that_o the_o seem_a absurdity_n of_o this_o mystery_n be_v not_o in_o respect_n of_o natural_a reason_n but_o mere_o of_o jmagination_n may_v hence_o appear_v that_o some_o natural_a truth_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n as_o difficile_a and_o incredible_a which_o will_v be_v see_v if_o we_o compare_v the_o four_o above_o mention_a difficulty_n with_o the_o difficulty_n some_o truth_n evident_a in_o nature_n have_v answer_n when_o difficulty_n object_v arise_v from_o experience_n of_o sense_n and_o principle_n of_o nature_n and_o there_o be_v no_o express_a or_o manifest_a word_n of_o god_n sufficient_a to_o move_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o contrary_a it_o be_v the_o part_n of_o each_o intelligent_a and_o prudent_a man_n rather_o to_o credit_n that_o which_o be_v apparent_a to_o sense_n and_o common_a reason_n elucet_fw-la than_o to_o believe_v paradox_n upon_o no_o true_a ground_n and_o reason_n jesuit_fw-la first_o we_o can_v imagine_v that_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v contain_v in_o the_o compass_n of_o a_o small_a host_n but_o it_o be_v not_o more_o incredible_a that_o in_o a_o thing_n of_o small_a quantititie_n for_o example_n the_o wing_n of_o a_o fly_n there_o shall_v be_v so_o many_o part_n as_o unfold_v and_o lay_v together_o will_v cover_v the_o whole_a face_n of_o the_o world_n both_o of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v demonstrable_a in_o philosophy_n that_o even_o in_o the_o wing_n of_o a_o fly_n there_o be_v so_o many_o part_n as_o broad_a and_o long_o as_o the_o wing_n though_o still_o thin_a and_o thin_a that_o almighty_a god_n separate_v and_o unfold_n they_o may_v therewith_o cover_v the_o whole_a world_n for_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o some_o finite_a number_n of_o such_o part_n so_o separate_v each_o of_o they_o as_o long_o and_o as_o broad_a as_o a_o fly_n wing_n will_v cover_v the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n certain_a also_o it_o be_v that_o the_o wing_n of_o the_o fly_n be_v still_o divisible_a into_o more_o and_o more_o such_o part_n so_o that_o no_o finite_a number_n be_v assignable_a but_o god_n may_v still_o separate_v from_o that_o wing_n a_o great_a number_n without_o any_o end_n therefore_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o in_o the_o wing_n of_o a_o fly_n there_o be_v so_o much_o quantity_n as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o cover_v the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n both_o of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n if_o god_n will_v but_o separate_v and_o unfold_v the_o same_o be_v not_o this_o secret_a of_o philosophy_n as_o incredible_a to_o carnal_a imagination_n as_o the_o be_v of_o christ_n body_n within_o a_o small_a host_n we_o that_o can_v comprehend_v thing_n we_o see_v with_o eye_n and_o feel_v with_o hand_n certain_o we_o shall_v have_v much_o ado_n
kernel_n of_o a_o apple_n a_o great_a tree_n may_v be_v make_v and_o nourish_v by_o the_o force_n and_o vigour_n proceed_v from_o the_o same_o do_v not_o we_o see_v by_o daily_a experience_n the_o same_o to_o be_v true_a that_o ash_n may_v be_v make_v of_o glass_n that_o stone_n in_o the_o stomach_n of_o a_o dove_n iron_n in_o the_o belly_n of_o a_o ostrich_n be_v turn_v into_o flesh_n that_o of_o a_o rot_a bark_n of_o a_o tree_n fall_v into_o the_o water_n shall_v be_v breed_v and_o produce_v a_o perfect_a bird_n to_o i_o seem_v more_o incredible_a than_o that_o god_n shall_v make_v the_o accident_n of_o bread_n separate_v from_o their_o substance_n to_o nourish_v man_n body_n for_o the_o dead_a bark_n of_o a_o tree_n may_v seem_v to_o have_v no_o more_o efficacy_n of_o itself_o to_o produce_v a_o live_a creature_n special_o so_o perfect_a a_o bird_n as_o barnacle_n than_o have_v the_o accident_n of_o bread_n to_o feed_v and_o breed_v the_o flesh_n of_o a_o live_a man_n yea_o many_o philosopher_n teach_v and_o in_o my_o judgement_n convince_v that_o in_o substantial_a generation_n where_o no_o cause_n coequal_a in_o perfection_n to_o the_o effect_n produce_v be_v present_a god_n by_o his_o omnipotency_n do_v supply_v deficiency_n of_o natural_a cause_n why_o then_o shall_v any_o man_n so_o much_o mislike_v our_o doctrine_n that_o in_o this_o mystery_n where_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n want_v god_n by_o the_o secret_a operation_n of_o his_o power_n supply_v the_o defect_n thereof_o see_v by_o the_o opinion_n of_o many_o learned_a philosopher_n his_o providence_n by_o the_o like_a secret_a special_a work_a do_v ordinary_o daily_o and_o hourly_o supply_v the_o manifold_a defect_n of_o substantial_a secondary_a agent_n neither_o be_v the_o manner_n how_o god_n can_v do_v this_o difsicile_a to_o explicate_v for_o he_o may_v enable_v the_o quantity_n of_o bread_n to_o receive_v and_o sustain_v the_o work_n of_o man_n nutritive_a power_n and_o when_o in_o that_o quantity_n there_o be_v the_o last_o accidental_a disposition_n to_o the_o form_n of_o flesh_n he_o can_v secret_o produce_v again_o materiam_fw-la primam_fw-la that_o be_v of_o the_o bread_n and_o combine_v the_o same_o with_o the_o prepare_a quantity_n and_o the_o substantial_a form_n of_o flesh_n what_o reason_n be_v there_o why_o god_n may_v not_o do_v this_o yea_o do_v it_o soon_o than_o we_o speak_v it_o wherefore_o the_o seem_a absurdity_n of_o this_o mystery_n be_v as_o i_o have_v show_v mere_o imaginary_a and_o not_o like_o those_o against_o the_o trinity_n and_o the_o incarnation_n wherein_o not_o so_o much_o imagination_n as_o reason_n find_v difficulty_n it_o be_v the_o part_n not_o only_o of_o sincere_a christian_a faith_n but_o also_o of_o a_o clear_a excellent_a wit_n to_o conceive_v they_o and_o not_o to_o permit_v wander_v unruly_a fancy_n destitute_a of_o reason_n to_o control_v our_o belief_n about_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o christ_n word_n so_o many_o way_n by_o the_o grave_a testimony_n of_o antiquity_n recommend_v unto_o us._n answer_n that_o accident_n may_v subsist_v and_o have_v their_o natural_a force_n and_o operation_n without_o a_o subject_n of_o support_n or_o inhaerencie_n imply_v a_o contradiction_n for_o it_o be_v of_o the_o be_v and_o definition_n of_o accident_n to_o be_v in_o another_o inesse_fw-la or_o to_o be_v in_o their_o subject_n and_o none_o of_o the_o example_n take_v from_o a_o kernel_n ash_n iron_n in_o the_o belly_n of_o a_o ostrich_n the_o bark_n of_o a_o tree_n etc._n etc._n be_v ad_fw-la idem_fw-la for_o these_o be_v not_o accident_n without_o a_o substance_n but_o real_a body_n have_v by_o nature_n a_o proportion_n and_o propension_n to_o produce_v their_o own_o effect_n either_o as_o seminal_a cause_n or_o true_a material_n convert_v by_o heat_n fire_n and_o art_n or_o thing_n putrescent_fw-la form_v and_o animate_v by_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o other_o secret_a and_o natural_a cause_n that_o a_o akorne_n shall_v become_v a_o oak_n be_v wonderful_a as_o the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v yet_o it_o be_v as_o natural_a as_o that_o a_o lion_n beget_v a_o lion_n nay_o as_o that_o the_o sun_n or_o fire_n shine_v that_o of_o ash_n be_v make_v glass_n what_o be_v it_o but_o that_o a_o transparent_a body_n be_v make_v of_o a_o body_n not_o transparent_a so_o you_o of_o snow_n etc._n etc._n and_o concern_v stone_n iron_n etc._n etc._n i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o these_o feed_v or_o nourish_v dove_n hawk_n struthiocameles_a etc._n etc._n but_o only_o cool_v or_o cleanse_v they_o and_o this_o i_o count_v not_o impossible_a in_o nature_n that_o vegetative_a heat_n shall_v in_o short_a time_n dissolve_v stone_n the_o barnacle_n be_v generatio_fw-la ex_fw-la putri_fw-la as_o be_v mouse_n frog_n and_o serpent_n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o accident_n nourish_v without_o matter_n and_o substance_n now_o for_o all_o the_o former_a we_o know_v the_o truth_n and_o certainty_n by_o natural_a reason_n and_o by_o experience_n of_o our_o sense_n but_o there_o be_v no_o natural_a or_o supernatural_a rule_n or_o law_n no_o manifest_a demonstration_n either_o to_o sense_n or_o reason_n no_o revelation_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o abstract_a form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n subsist_v without_o a_o subject_n and_o have_v power_n to_o nourish_v and_o may_v be_v taste_v and_o feel_v and_o also_o putrify_v but_o romist_n presumptuous_o form_v these_o chimera_n and_o idol_n in_o the_o forge_n of_o their_o own_o deceive_a breast_n and_o they_o deserve_v to_o be_v feed_v only_o with_o accident_n like_o bird_n that_o peck_v at_o the_o paint_a grape_n etc._n which_o think_v to_o feed_v any_o intelligent_a reader_n with_o such_o improper_a and_o extravagant_a accident_n jesvit_n 3._o consideration_n three_o to_o make_v christian_n incline_v to_o 〈◊〉_d this_o mystery_n so_o difficile_a to_o carnal_a imagination_n this_o consideration_n may_v be_v very_o potent_a to_o wit_n that_o in_o believe_v the_o same_o on_o the_o one_o side_n there_o may_v be_v great_a merit_n and_o excellent_a faith_n if_o it_o be_v a_o truth_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n though_o which_o be_v impossible_a it_o shall_v be_v false_a yet_o in_o believe_v it_o we_o shall_v not_o fall_v into_o any_o damnable_a error_n for_o although_o we_o suppose_v this_o a_o unpossible_a case_n yet_o what_o can_v be_v lay_v to_o our_o charge_n which_o we_o may_v not_o defend_v and_o justify_v by_o all_o the_o rule_n of_o equity_n and_o reason_n if_o we_o be_v accuse_v that_o we_o take_v bread_n to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n adore_v the_o same_o as_o god_n so_o commit_v idolatry_n we_o may_v defend_v that_o both_o for_o soul_n and_o body_n we_o be_v innocent_a herein_o for_o see_v the_o body_n be_v not_o make_v guilty_a but_o by_o a_o guilty_a mind_n even_o our_o body_n may_v plead_v not_o guilty_a see_v our_o mind_n our_o thought_n or_o devotion_n be_v full_o and_o total_o refer_v unto_o christ_n who_o we_o true_o apprehend_v by_o faith_n as_o veil_v with_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o so_o may_v repel_v the_o reproach_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d bread_n worshipper_n with_o say_v quae_fw-la novit_fw-la mens_fw-la est_fw-la pani_fw-la nil_fw-la vovimus_fw-la illa_fw-la neither_o do_v we_o believe_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o christ_n body_n upon_o sleight_n reason_n or_o move_v by_o the_o fancy_n of_o our_o own_o head_n but_o contrary_a to_o our_o fancy_n out_o of_o reverence_n to_o the_o express_a word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n a_o sense_n declare_v by_o most_o ancient_a father_n define_v by_o many_o general_a counsel_n deliver_v by_o full_a consent_n of_o our_o ancestor_n so_o practise_v in_o the_o church_n for_o many_o age_n without_o any_o know_a beginning_n final_o confirm_v with_o the_o most_o credible_a and_o constant_a report_n of_o innumerable_a most_o evident_a miracle_n can_v a_o christian_a believe_v any_o point_n of_o religion_n upon_o sure_a ground_n and_o if_o god_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n will_v condemn_v none_o but_o such_o as_o live_n in_o this_o world_n wrong_v he_o in_o his_o honour_n why_o shall_v catholic_n fear_v any_o hard_a sentence_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o prompt_a credulity_n of_o transubstantiation_n that_o be_v of_o god_n word_n take_v in_o the_o plain_a proper_a sense_n be_v it_o a_o 〈◊〉_d to_o his_o verity_n that_o they_o deny_v their_o sense_n correct_v their_o imagination_n reform_v their_o discourse_n abnegate_n their_o judgement_n rather_o than_o not_o to_o believe_v what_o to_o they_o seem_v his_o word_n be_v it_o a_o injury_n to_o his_o power_n to_o be_v persuade_v he_o can_v do_v thing_n incomprehensible_a without_o number_n put_v the_o same_o body_n in_o innumerable_a place_n at_o once_o make_v a_o body_n occupy_v no_o place_n and_o yet_o remain_v a_o quantitative_a substance_n
spiritual_a manducation_n alone_o without_o sacramental_a if_o the_o former_a illation_n of_o romist_n be_v good_a it_o will_v follow_v likewise_o from_o thence_o that_o receive_v of_o bread_n in_o the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n institution_n for_o whole_a and_o entire_a christ_n according_a to_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o infinite_a person_n be_v in_o the_o blood_n alone_o if_o the_o popish_a doctrine_n of_o concomitancie_n be_v true_a and_o if_o this_o be_v grant_v as_o of_o necessity_n it_o must_v than_o romist_n may_v mangle_v and_o transform_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n at_o their_o pleasure_n second_o the_o end_n and_o fruit_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v either_o common_a to_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n with_o other_o mean_n of_o grace_n abscedat_fw-la or_o else_o proper_a to_o it_o only_o to_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o recognition_n of_o christ_n passion_n and_o by_o faith_n in_o the_o same_o may_v be_v a_o effect_n of_o the_o gospel_n preach_v joh._n 6._o 54._o but_o to_o eat_v the_o same_o flesh_n and_o blood_n communicate_v more_o distinct_o and_o effectual_o by_o visible_a seal_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v a_o end_n and_o fruit_n peculiar_a and_o proper_a to_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n 1._o cor._n 10._o 16._o a_o man_n may_v have_v the_o same_o inheritance_n bestow_v on_o he_o by_o the_o word_n and_o writing_n of_o the_o donor_n yet_o when_o the_o same_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o donor_n the_o donation_n be_v of_o great_a validity_n and_o if_o by_o law_n or_o custom_n two_o seal_n shall_v be_v appoint_v the_o apposition_n of_o one_o be_v not_o of_o equal_a force_n and_o validity_n to_o the_o apposition_n of_o both_o so_o likewise_o because_o the_o son_n of_o god_n make_v choice_n of_o two_o outward_a sign_n namely_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o represent_v and_o apply_v his_o passion_n and_o oblation_n and_o withal_o command_v the_o common_a use_n and_o reception_n of_o both_o say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o and_o also_o annex_v a_o special_a promise_n and_o blessing_n to_o both_o these_o outward_a sign_n joint_o use_v therefore_o the_o use_n &_o sumption_n of_o one_o of_o these_o without_o the_o other_o can_v have_v so_o great_a force_n altera_fw-la to_o apply_v the_o effect_n &_o fruit_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o the_o use_n &_o reception_n of_o both_o and_o as_o in_o concause_n or_o partial_a cause_n the_o action_n of_o the_o one_o can_v produce_v the_o effect_n without_o the_o other_o and_o as_o when_o two_o key_n be_v provide_v to_o open_v a_o lock_n the_o same_o be_v not_o open_v by_o one_o of_o they_o only_o so_o likewise_o christ_n jesus_n have_v institute_v and_o sanctify_v two_o sign_n for_o the_o more_o proportionable_a and_o effectual_a application_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n it_o be_v gross_a presumption_n in_o man_n to_o mutilate_v and_o cut_v off_o a_o part_n of_o that_o body_n which_o the_o wisdom_n of_o christ_n have_v frame_v in_o due_a and_o beautiful_a proportion_n and_o to_o divide_v that_o which_o god_n have_v join_v together_o and_o without_o warrant_n from_o god_n reveal_v word_n to_o attribute_v a_o total_a effect_n to_o a_o partial_a mean_n and_o cause_n jesuit_fw-la hence_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o without_o any_o just_a cause_n some_o protestant_n inveigh_v against_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n as_o 13._o profess_v to_o contradict_v the_o precept_n of_o christ_n because_o it_o decree_v that_o the_o sacrament_n may_v be_v lawful_o give_v under_o one_o kind_n non_fw-la obstante_fw-la quod_fw-la christus_fw-la in_o utraque_fw-la specie_fw-la illud_fw-la instituerit_fw-la &_o apostolis_n administraverit_fw-la notwithstanding_o christ_n institution_n and_o administration_n thereof_o in_o both_o kind_n to_o his_o disciple_n this_o their_o bitterness_n proceed_v from_o zeal_n without_o knowledge_n not_o distinguish_v the_o jnstitution_n of_o god_n from_o his_o precept_n which_o be_v very_o distinct_a for_o the_o precept_n of_o both_o kind_n if_o christ_n give_v any_o do_v bind_v whether_o both_o kind_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o man_n soul_n in_o grace_n or_o no_o but_o the_o jnstitution_n in_o both_o kind_n do_v not_o bind_v further_o than_o the_o thing_n institute_v to_o wit_n communion_n under_o both_o kind_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o maintain_n of_o spiritual_a life_n for_o which_o one_o kind_n be_v sufficient_a as_o i_o have_v show_v christ_n institution_n of_o both_o kind_n do_v not_o enforce_v the_o use_n of_o both_o if_o god_n shall_v have_v command_v the_o use_n both_o of_o meat_n and_o drink_v every_o man_n shall_v be_v bind_v not_o only_o to_o eat_v but_o also_o to_o drink_v though_o he_o have_v no_o necessity_n thereof_o but_o now_o see_v god_n have_v not_o give_v such_o a_o precept_n a_o man_n that_o can_v live_v by_o meat_n without_o ever_o drink_v be_v not_o bind_v to_o drink_v non_fw-la obstante_fw-la that_o god_n do_v institute_v both_o eat_n and_o drink_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o life_n in_o every_o man_n answer_n the_o council_n of_o constance_n be_v just_o censure_v for_o presume_v to_o alter_v and_o disannul_v the_o ordinance_n of_o christ_n authore_fw-la for_o if_o it_o be_v flagitious_a among_o man_n to_o alter_v and_o contradict_v the_o lawful_a will_n of_o a_o testator_n galat._n 3.15_o shall_v it_o not_o be_v much_o more_o unlawfall_n to_o alter_v the_o testament_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o dispose_v to_o the_o common_a people_n his_o blood_n as_o well_o as_o his_o body_n say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o math._n 26_o 27._o and_o except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o man_n etc._n etc._n joh._n 6.53_o and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o say_a synod_n be_v most_o presumptuous_a etc._n for_o this_o they_o pronounce_v although_o christ_n after_o supper_n institute_v and_o administer_v to_o his_o disciple_n under_o both_o kind_n etc._n etc._n and_o although_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n this_o sacrament_n be_v receive_v of_o believer_n in_o both_o kind_n yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o contrary_a custom_n for_o laic_n to_o receive_v in_o one_o kind_n be_v with_o good_a reason_n bring_v in_o and_o they_o be_v heretic_n which_o hold_v this_o sacrilegious_a or_o unlawful_a but_o what_o be_v these_o man_n in_o comparison_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n if_o man_n may_v thus_o twit_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n what_o shall_v become_v of_o all_o religion_n the_o sole_a and_o total_a rule_n to_o guide_v the_o church_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n be_v christ_n institution_n and_o practice_n record_v by_o the_o evangelist_n and_o testify_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o primitive_a church_n in_o their_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n follow_v this_o rule_n as_o some_o of_o our_o learned_a adversary_n ingenious_o confess_v specie_fw-la if_o therefore_o christ_n jesus_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o after_o these_o the_o primitive_a church_n administer_v the_o communion_n to_o lay_v people_n in_o both_o kind_n as_o this_o synod_n confess_v and_o on_o the_o contraie_v nothing_o be_v extant_a in_o holy_a writ_n or_o in_o the_o monument_n of_o the_o father_n to_o testify_v that_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n retract_v or_o alter_v this_o first_o practice_n what_o audacious_a sacrilege_n be_v it_o in_o the_o prelate_n of_o constance_n upon_o their_o own_o private_a and_o childish_a plura_fw-la reason_n to_o cancel_v christ_n last_o will_v and_o testament_n and_o to_o violate_v the_o sacred_a precept_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o our_o adversary_n labour_v by_o a_o distinction_n of_o institution_n and_o precept_n to_o plaster_v the_o ulcerous_a doctrine_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o constance_n say_v or_o imply_v that_o although_o christ_n do_v institute_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n in_o two_o kind_n yet_o he_o give_v no_o precept_n for_o the_o use_n of_o it_o in_o two_o kind_n but_o this_o plaster_n of_o sig-leave_n heal_v not_o the_o wound_n for_o there_o be_v both_o a_o institution_n and_o a_o precept_n for_o both_o kind_n and_o more_o express_o for_o the_o cup_n than_o for_o the_o bread_n for_o christ_n say_v express_o and_o literal_o drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o whereas_o he_o say_v not_o so_o literal_o and_o express_o eat_v you_o all_o of_o this_o beside_o his_o institution_n be_v a_o virtual_a and_o interpretative_a precept_n as_o appear_v by_o s._n paul_n 1_o cor._n 11.23_o and_o christ_n do_v institute_v the_o eucharist_n in_o two_o kind_n that_o people_n may_v receive_v and_o ufe_v it_o in_o two_o kind_n also_o if_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o institution_n prove_v not_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o use_n than_o the_o eucharist_n may_v be_v use_v in_o another_o manner_n i_o mean_v in_o thing_n substantial_a than_o
the_o one_o part_n from_o the_o other_o to_o wit_n because_o of_o the_o institution_n and_o signification_n thus_o our_o adversary_n be_v confute_v touch_v pope_n leo_n and_o gelasius_n by_o a_o most_o intelligent_a and_o learned_a doctor_n of_o his_o own_o society_n jesuit_fw-la and_o as_o this_o be_v certain_a and_o grant_v on_o our_o part_n so_o it_o be_v no_o less_o certain_a that_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v never_o practice_v the_o use_n of_o the_o cup_n as_o pertain_v to_o the_o essential_a integrity_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o as_o command_v by_o divine_a precept_n but_o think_v the_o recoive_n under_o one_o and_o both_o kind_n a_o thing_n indifferent_a this_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o time_n since_o christ_n 〈◊〉_d from_o our_o day_n upward_o whence_o i_o gather_v five_o argument_n first_o be_v the_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n among_o who_o a_o bohemian_n protestant_n do_v profess_v that_o have_v 112._o the_o fear_n of_o god_n before_o his_o eye_n be_v dare_v not_o censure_v the_o roman_a church_n of_o heresy_n in_o this_o point_n hospinian_n write_v that_o some_o protestant_n confess_v that_o whole_a christ_n be_v real_o present_a exhibit_v and_o receive_v under_o every_o kind_n and_o therefore_o under_o the_o only_a form_n of_o bread_n and_o that_o they_o do_v not_o judge_v those_o to_o do_v evil_a that_o communicate_v under_o one_o kind_n melancthon_n as_o to_o eat_v or_o not_o to_o eat_v swine_n flesh_n 78._o be_v place_v in_o our_o power_n and_o the_v indifferent_a so_o say_v he_o i_o judge_v of_o the_o eucharist_n that_o they_o fin_n not_o who_o know_v and_o believe_v this_o liberty_n do_v use_v either_o part_n of_o the_o figne_n and_o luther_n they_o fin_n not_o against_o christ_n who_o use_v euchar_n one_o kind_n see_v christ_n do_v not_o command_v to_o use_v it_o but_o have_v leave_v it_o to_o the_o will_n of_o every_o one_o and_o hospinian_n allege_v 12._o luther_n affirm_v it_o be_v not_o needful_a to_o give_v both_o kind_n but_o the_o one_o alone_o suffice_v the_o church_n have_v power_n of_o ordain_v only_o one_o and_o the_o people_n ought_v to_o be_v content_a therewith_o if_o it_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o church_n but_o these_o testimony_n though_o they_o may_v serve_v to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o a_o clamorous_a adversary_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o sufficient_a to_o satisfy_v any_o judicious_a man_n in_o regard_n their_o author_n be_v man_n most_o uncertain_a and_o various_a in_o their_o doctrine_n about_o religion_n now_o aver_n as_o orthodox_n and_o divine_a truth_n what_o soon_o after_o they_o fall_v to_o abhor_v as_o heretical_a and_o impious_a answer_n concern_v luther_n melancthon_n johannes_n perzibram_n etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v that_o your_o benefactor_n coccius_n to_o who_o you_o be_v perpetual_o indebt_v for_o your_o reading_n allege_v some_o such_o say_n out_o of_o these_o author_n but_o how_o true_o it_o be_v uncertain_a for_o in_o the_o ordinary_a edition_n i_o find_v the_o contrary_n deliver_v by_o they_o gospel_n make_v a_o book_n of_o recognition_n and_o it_o be_v more_o seemly_a for_o yourself_o to_o revoke_v your_o error_n than_o to_o persist_v in_o a_o blind_a and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o truth_n jesuit_fw-la i_o add_v therefore_o second_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o three_o general_a counsel_n celebrate_v before_o the_o breach_n of_o luther_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o council_n of_o florence_n wherein_o 41._o be_v present_v the_o grecian_a and_o armenian_a bishop_n where_o 〈◊〉_d be_v define_v that_o christ_n be_v whole_a under_o each_o 〈◊〉_d the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d though_o they_o allow_v the_o use_n 30._o of_o the_o cup_n 〈◊〉_d the_o 〈◊〉_d define_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n the_o council_n of_o constance_n give_v 13._o example_n unto_o both_o these_o former_a counsel_n be_v the_o first_o that_o define_v this_o truth_n answer_n you_o add_v nothing_o of_o any_o worth_n for_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n be_v in_o your_o own_o eye_n uncanonical_a and_o he_o adlesse_a and_o be_v reject_v by_o yourselves_o in_o diverse_a article_n nt_v and_o when_o you_o prove_v which_o will_v be_v ad_fw-la calendas_fw-la graecas_fw-la that_o the_o three_o synod_n name_v by_o you_o be_v general_a counsel_n it_o shall_v be_v grant_v that_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n be_v not_o destitute_a of_o general_a synodical_a late_a testimony_n jesuit_fw-la the_o three_o argument_n be_v the_o receive_v and_o allow_v general_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n which_o spontaneous_o even_o before_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n do_v abstain_v from_o the_o cup_n as_o the_o say_a council_n do_v acknowledge_v which_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o many_o that_o live_v before_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n yea_o alexander_n halensis_n who_o live_v two_o 3._o hundred_o year_n before_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o constance_n say_v that_o almost_o every_o where_o lay_v man_n receive_v under_o the_o sole_a for_o i_o of_o bread_n and_o venerable_a bede_n do_v signify_v 14._o that_o in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n ever_o since_o the_o first_o 〈◊〉_d of_o she_o under_o s._n gregory_n be_v use_v 〈◊〉_d under_o one_o kind_n for_o the_o laity_n which_o can_v never_o have_v enter_v into_o the_o church_n without_o be_v 〈◊〉_d and_o mark_v as_o a_o heresy_n have_v not_o the_o church_n ever_o hold_v communion_n under_o one_o or_o both_o kind_n as_o a_o thing_n of_o indifferency_n answer_n the_o greek_a church_n always_o receive_v in_o both_o kind_n as_o yourselves_o acknowledge_v 482._o therefore_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n be_v at_o no_o time_n a_o universal_a custom_n also_o vasques_n durasse_n the_o jesuit_n say_v we_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o even_o in_o the_o latin_a church_n communion_n in_o both_o kind_n be_v use_v and_o have_v continuance_n until_o the_o age_n of_o thomas_n aquinas_n alexander_n de_fw-fr hales_n affirm_v actualis_fw-la there_o be_v more_o merit_n and_o power_n of_o grace_n in_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n than_o in_o one_o last_o you_o be_v guide_v with_o that_o spirit_n which_o be_v mention_v 3._o king_n 22._o v_o 21._o when_o you_o affirm_v that_o venerable_a bede_n say_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n ever_o since_o her_o first_o conversion_n under_o s._n gregory_n communion_n under_o one_o kind_n be_v in_o use_n for_o the_o laity_n first_o no_o such_o report_n be_v find_v in_o this_o author_n second_o in_o one_o of_o the_o testimony_n cite_v by_o yourself_o the_o contrary_a be_v affirm_v for_o the_o two_o apostle_n which_o be_v report_v to_o have_v speak_v to_o a_o certain_a young_a lad_n say_v as_o follow_v subleveris_fw-la you_o must_v wait_v until_o the_o mass_n or_o communion_n be_v end_v and_o have_v then_o receive_v the_o holy_a food_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n you_o shall_v be_v deliver_v from_o your_o infirmity_n by_o death_n and_o exalt_v to_o celestial_a joy_n jesuit_fw-la the_o four_o argument_n be_v draw_v from_o many_o sign_n and_o token_n that_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v sometime_o use_v communion_n under_o one_o kind_n first_o the_o 〈◊〉_d receive_v under_o the_o only_a form_n of_o bread_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o history_n of_o serapion_n relate_v by_o eusebius_n and_o the_o grecian_n ambrosij_n at_o this_o day_n though_o they_o give_v the_o cup_n to_o the_o communicant_n in_o the_o church_n yet_o to_o the_o sick_a they_o send_v the_o sacrament_n under_o one_o kind_n yea_o s._n ambrose_n as_o paulinus_n relate_v in_o his_o life_n at_o his_o death_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n under_o the_o sole_a form_n of_o bread_n and_o straight_o after_o the_o receive_n thereof_o give_v up_o his_o soul_n answer_n first_o touch_v serapion_n relate_v by_o eusebius_n he_o receive_v both_o 36._o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o the_o lad_n which_o bring_v the_o portion_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v command_v by_o the_o priest_n which_o send_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o sop_n the_o bread_n into_o wine_n and_o be_v moisten_v to_o put_v it_o into_o the_o old_a man_n mouth_n and_o this_o be_v perform_v according_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o lad_n wet_v or_o moisten_v the_o portion_n of_o bread_n which_o he_o receive_v of_o the_o priest_n and_o infuse_v the_o same_o into_o serapion_n the_o old_a man_n mouth_n and_o the_o council_n of_o tower_n allege_v by_o burchardus_fw-la and_o iuo_o aeternam_fw-la report_v the_o manner_n and_o reason_n of_o dip_v the_o bread_n in_o this_o sort_n we_o command_v that_o the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v give_v sick_a person_n shall_v be_v dip_v into_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n that_o the_o priest_n may_v say_v in_o truth_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n profit_v thou_o to_o life_n eternal_a which_o dip_v show_v that_o they_o think_v it_o not_o sufficient_a to_o
by_o a_o voluntatrie_n and_o provisional_a mandate_n touch_v recicide_n unless_o you_o be_v otherwise_o proni_fw-la ad_fw-la rem_fw-la bend_v to_o mischief_n et_fw-la luxato_fw-la hoc_fw-la freno_fw-la and_o this_o paper_n bridle_n be_v break_v to_o broach_v and_o inculcate_v it_o if_o this_o your_o master_n hand_n shall_v cast_v cross_n in_o stead_n of_o pile_n what_o shall_v we_o expect_v from_o such_o gamester_n quibus_fw-la ludus_fw-la sunt_fw-la capita_fw-la &_o diademata_fw-la regum_fw-la jesuit_fw-la this_o only_a i_o hope_v i_o may_v with_o your_o majesty_n good_a like_n affirm_v that_o our_o catholic_a doctrine_n in_o this_o point_n be_v nothing_o so_o prejudicial_a to_o prince_n as_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o most_o caluinist_n and_o lutheran_n express_v in_o their_o write_n whereof_o we_o have_v in_o this_o age_n but_o over-evident_a and_o lamentable_a example_n to_o the_o world_n and_o your_o majesty_n not_o unknown_a and_o have_v the_o author_n of_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n which_o from_o my_o soul_n i_o abhor_v keep_v themselves_o within_o the_o bound_n of_o catholic_a doctrine_n they_o have_v never_o undergo_v that_o most_o odious_a and_o abominable_a enterprise_n answer_n by_o a_o draught_n of_o sea_n water_n one_o may_v judge_v of_o the_o brackishnesse_n of_o the_o whole_a his_o gracious_a majesty_n have_v taste_v already_o of_o some_o fruit_n of_o popish_a loyalty_n and_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n animalise_v by_o jesuit_n but_o now_o disavow_v for_o it_o succeed_v not_o be_v a_o watchword_n for_o prudent_a man_n not_o to_o confide_v in_o they_o who_o the_o leven_a of_o superstition_n have_v sour_v but_o be_v the_o wit_n of_o a_o jesuit_n grow_v so_o barren_a have_v you_o no_o other_o evasion_n but_o by_o recrimination_n and_o that_o impertinent_a for_o as_o concern_v your_o flim-flam_a of_o caluinist_n and_o lutheran_n i_o answer_v his_o majesty_n and_o the_o state_n of_o england_n have_v feel_v no_o such_o disturbance_n but_o have_v observe_v by_o long_a experience_n that_o it_o can_v enter_v into_o any_o true_a protestant_n heart_n upon_o any_o occasion_n whatsoever_o to_o lift_v up_o their_o head_n against_o the_o lord_n anoint_v and_o if_o any_o unsound_a or_o equivocal_a member_n appear_v among_o they_o diverse_a from_o the_o true_a body_n let_v they_o receive_v censure_n according_a to_o their_o demerit_n jesuit_fw-la as_o for_o the_o other_o question_n which_o your_o majesty_n propose_v particular_o to_o myself_o viz._n what_o i_o think_v subject_n ought_v to_o do_v in_o the_o case_n of_o papal_a deposition_n of_o their_o prince_n i_o can_v give_v no_o better_a council_n unto_o other_o than_o what_o i_o be_o resolve_v to_o take_v myself_o first_o to_o pray_v for_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n and_o true_a concord_n between_o both_o party_n second_o to_o exhort_v all_o to_o do_v all_o other_o good_a office_n tend_v thereunto_o and_o rather_o to_o suffer_v with_o patience_n than_o any_o way_n concur_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o prince_n or_o disturbance_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n three_o i_o do_v protest_v before_o almighty_a god_n that_o i_o will_v rather_o offer_v myself_o to_o die_v than_o any_o way_n to_o be_v accessary_a to_o your_o majesty_n death_n all_o which_o thing_n most_o sincere_o utter_v by_o i_o i_o humble_o beg_v your_o majesty_n will_v vouchsafe_v to_o receive_v as_o issue_v from_o the_o conceit_n and_o heart_n of_o all_o my_o profession_n who_o institute_n particular_o command_v respect_n and_o obedience_n to_o all_o in_o authority_n as_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o discourse_n i_o make_v plain_a unto_o your_o majesty_n unto_o who_o we_o especial_o who_o be_v your_o bear_a subject_n 1607._o do_v bear_v so_o unfeigned_a affection_n that_o we_o shall_v think_v ourselves_o happy_a if_o your_o majesty_n will_v vouchsafe_v but_o to_o make_v trial_n thereof_o not_o doubt_v but_o your_o excellent_a judgement_n will_v soon_o discover_v we_o to_o be_v not_o only_o as_o loyal_a as_o any_o other_o of_o your_o subject_n but_o more_o willing_a to_o employ_v our_o wit_n pen_n and_o labour_n even_o with_o hazard_n of_o our_o life_n in_o perform_v your_o majesty_n commandment_n than_o many_o who_o enjoy_v the_o favour_n of_o the_o time_n make_v fair_a show_n of_o their_o own_o affection_n and_o fidelity_n and_o uncharitable_o traduce_v we_o as_o capital_a enemy_n to_o your_o maiestes_n person_n state_n and_o dignity_n answer_n it_o be_v needless_a to_o make_v many_o word_n for_o if_o your_o heart_n and_o pen_n accord_n testify_v the_o same_o by_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o by_o renounce_v the_o pestilent_a opinion_n of_o equivocation_n therwise_o your_o insinuation_n and_o blandishment_n be_v but_o mask_n and_o tecture_n of_o latent_fw-la perfidiousness_n and_o they_o which_o be_v acquaint_v with_o romish_a guile_n must_v still_o suspect_v that_o you_o play_v the_o fox_n astutam_fw-la vapido_fw-la gestans_fw-la sub_fw-la pectore_fw-la vulpem_fw-la over_o aliud_fw-la retinens_fw-la aliud_fw-la sub_fw-la pectore_fw-la condens_fw-la now_o concern_v this_o precedent_a passage_n let_v it_o be_v observe_v how_o the_o jesuit_n have_v not_o answer_v but_o decline_v his_o majesty_n question_n and_o we_o must_v hold_v he_o to_o stand_v mute_a as_o one_o not_o dare_v to_o put_v himself_o to_o his_o country_n lest_o he_o be_v find_v guilty_a for_o the_o question_n be_v what_o ought_v the_o subject_n to_o do_v in_o case_n a_o pope_n depose_v the_o king_n the_o jesuit_n answer_n be_v i_o pray_v for_o peace_n i_o exhort_v other_o i_o will_v rather_o die_v etc._n etc._n handsome_a compliment_n but_o no_o security_n if_o his_o holiness_n send_v another_o wind_n you_o which_o have_v vow_v strict_a obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n must_v turn_v your_o sail_n your_o vote_n and_o prayer_n must_v bound_v another_o way_n you_o must_v exhort_v other_o to_o execute_v the_o pope_n pleasure_n and_o if_o they_o and_o you_o perish_v in_o the_o pope_n quarrel_n you_o die_v martyr_n and_o go_v to_o heaven_n in_o a_o string_n the_o jesvit_n conclusion_n have_v perform_v your_o majesty_n will_n and_o pleasure_n in_o seek_v to_o give_v satisfaction_n about_o the_o nine_o principal_a point_n that_o withhold_v your_o royal_a assent_n from_o join_v unto_o the_o roman_a church_n my_o poor_a endeavour_n prostrate_v at_o your_o majesty_n foot_n to_o receive_v their_o doom_n humble_o beseech_v this_o favour_n that_o your_o charity_n and_o desire_v of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n may_v join_v together_o with_o your_o excellent_a wisdom_n and_o learning_n to_o pronounce_v the_o sentence_n although_o i_o be_v confident_a that_o examine_v religion_n by_o the_o mere_a rigour_n of_o only_a scripture_n the_o catholic_a doctrine_n will_v get_v the_o victory_n more_o clear_a and_o express_v testimony_n stand_v on_o our_o side_n than_o any_o that_o protestant_n can_v bring_v for_o themselves_o as_o by_o the_o former_a discourse_n may_v appear_v although_o also_o i_o be_v much_o more_o confident_a in_o the_o tradition_n &_o perfect_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n interpret_n scripture_n which_o by_o so_o full_a consent_n deliver_v the_o roman_a doctrine_n that_o partiality_n itself_o due_o ponder_v can_v hardly_o in_o heart_n and_o in_o wardly_a judge_n against_o they_o yet_o my_o chief_a hope_n be_v in_o those_o charitable_a thought_n and_o desire_n of_o peace_n and_o unity_n in_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v inspire_v into_o your_o religious_a breast_n answer_n you_o deceive_v yourself_o touch_v his_o majesty_n for_o not_o only_o these_o nine_o point_n but_o many_o other_o detain_v his_o royal_a assent_n from_o join_v with_o the_o roman_a faith_n second_o your_o ostentation_n of_o prove_v these_o article_n by_o the_o mere_a rigout_n of_o sole_a scripture_n be_v vanitas_fw-la vanitatum_fw-la a_o vanity_n beyond_o vanity_n for_o the_o learned_a of_o your_o own_o part_n acknowledge_v that_o many_o of_o your_o romish_a article_n be_v neither_o express_o nor_o involue_o contain_v in_o holy_a scripture_n tradiderunt_fw-la neither_o again_o can_v your_o faith_n subsist_v if_o it_o be_v try_v by_o genuine_a and_o orthodoxal_a tradition_n eos_fw-la for_o yourself_o in_o this_o treatise_n wherein_o you_o perform_v as_o much_o in_o substance_n as_o your_o cause_n will_v bear_v have_v make_v no_o demonstration_n of_o any_o one_o article_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o perpetual_a tradition_n and_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o you_o be_v conscious_a hereof_o because_o in_o your_o conclusion_n you_o fall_v upon_o a_o new_a disputation_n and_o seek_v to_o infer_v a_o necessity_n of_o reduce_v all_o controversy_n to_o the_o mere_a and_o absolute_a determination_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o pope_n who_o will_v not_o fail_v to_o be_v fast_a friend_n to_o themselves_o fini_fw-fr jesuit_fw-la for_o suppose_v that_o praeconceit_n instill_v into_o tender_a mind_n against_o they_o think_v compare_v catholic_n with_o protestant_n that_o scripture_n stand_v equal_o on_o both_o side_n yea_o sift_v
the_o matter_n by_o scripture_n only_o that_o protestant_n may_v seem_v to_o have_v the_o upper_a hand_n yet_o charity_n will_v move_v this_o question_n whether_o the_o testimony_n and_o argument_n they_o bring_v from_o scripture_n be_v so_o undeniable_o clear_a and_o so_o avoidable_o strong_a that_o no_o answer_n or_o evasion_n may_v be_v find_v but_o the_o roman_a church_n must_v be_v refuse_v notwithstanding_o so_o much_o discord_n and_o dissension_n so_o much_o inconstancy_n and_o incertainetie_n about_o religion_n which_o as_o reason_n prove_v must_v and_o as_o experience_n show_v do_v thereupon_o ensue_v answer_n first_o protestant_n do_v not_o only_o bring_v argument_n and_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n against_o the_o roman_a faith_n but_o also_o the_o testimony_n of_o antiquity_n and_o all_o other_o ground_n of_o verity_n second_o their_o argument_n from_o scripture_n be_v such_o as_o can_v be_v avoid_v but_o only_o by_o sophistry_n etc._n and_o in_o this_o manner_n the_o very_a argument_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o resurrection_n matth._n 22._o 32._o and_o the_o testimony_n which_o counsel_n and_o father_n use_v 〈◊〉_d arrian_n pelagian_n and_o sundry_a other_o heretic_n may_v receive_v appear_v and_o seem_a solution_n three_o if_o the_o scripture_n itself_o and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n with_o other_o ground_n of_o learning_n can_v as_o our_o adversary_n object_v de_fw-la facto_fw-la or_o presuppose_v the_o malice_n of_o some_o person_n 〈◊〉_d all_o discord_n and_o inconstancy_n of_o religion_n much_o less_o can_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n effect_v this_o for_o if_o man_n will_v not_o regard_v moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n etc._n etc._n if_o a_o angel_n come_v from_o heaven_n or_o if_o one_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a they_o may_v still_o cavil_n and_o refuse_v to_o believe_v but_o for_o the_o external_a repress_v of_o petulant_a spirit_n a_o free_a and_o lawful_a council_n concilium_fw-la be_v to_o be_v desire_v and_o a_o disposition_n of_o heart_n in_o christian_a prince_n and_o in_o other_o worthy_a member_n of_o the_o church_n to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o a_o trial_n by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o upon_o the_o same_o to_o conclude_v a_o common_a peace_n in_o christianity_n and_o to_o repress_v by_o discipline_n and_o authority_n factious_a and_o turbulent_a incendiary_n either_o of_o the_o romish_a or_o protestant_a part_n jesuit_fw-la for_o if_o you_o cast_v away_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o her_o authority_n no_o church_n be_v leave_v in_o the_o world_n that_o can_v with_o reason_n or_o dare_v for_o shame_n challenge_v to_o be_v infallible_a in_o her_o definition_n and_o if_o such_o a_o church_n be_v want_v what_o mean_n be_v leave_v either_o to_o keep_v the_o learned_a certain_o in_o peace_n or_o to_o give_v unto_o the_o ignorant_a assurance_n what_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n the_o apostle_n first_o preach_v answer_n you_o do_v well_o to_o name_n dare_v and_o 〈◊〉_d for_o if_o the_o papal_a faction_n have_v not_o pass_v all_o shame_n they_o have_v not_o to_o their_o usurpation_n of_o jurisdiction_n add_v the_o forgery_n and_o vaunt_n of_o absolute_a intallibilitie_n a_o privilege_n which_o i_o make_v no_o doubt_n no_o pope_n without_o or_o with_o his_o papal_a counsel_n ever_o in_o his_o inward_a conscience_n think_v himself_o to_o have_v but_o as_o for_o ecclesiastic_a decision_n and_o determination_n we_o say_v that_o although_o the_o absolute_a authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v refuse_v and_o although_o no_o other_o church_n in_o the_o world_n can_v true_o challenge_v absolute_a infallibility_n of_o judgement_n but_o conditional_a only_o or_o restrictive_a so_o far_o as_o it_o propound_v and_o confirm_v doctrine_n out_o of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n yet_o the_o learned_a may_v be_v preserve_v in_o peace_n and_o the_o ignorant_a in_o assurance_n of_o verity_n first_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v already_o determine_v all_o question_n of_o faith_n necessary_a for_o the_o church_n to_o understand_v by_o his_o own_o immediate_a decisive_a voice_n deliver_v in_o sacred_a scripture_n express_o or_o derivative_o 〈◊〉_d second_o if_o any_o other_o question_n arise_v touch_v history_n matter_n of_o fact_n natural_a or_o moral_a verity_n ceremony_n and_o external_a policy_n etc._n etc._n the_o same_o may_v be_v sufficient_o decide_v by_o christian_a prudence_n work_v upon_o the_o principle_n of_o reason_n humane_a history_n rule_v of_o art_n and_o by_o the_o example_n of_o former_a time_n and_o principal_o by_o the_o general_a rule_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o many_o question_n be_v raise_v by_o the_o curiosity_n and_o subtlety_n of_o man_n wherein_o if_o the_o church_n be_v ignorant_a nesciantur_fw-la and_o unresolued_a there_o ensue_v no_o prejudice_n in_o respect_n of_o faith_n three_o if_o contentious_a person_n lust_n to_o continue_v such_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o council_n can_v quell_v or_o stifle_v contention_n but_o only_o as_o a_o humane_a judge_n and_o by_o the_o same_o authority_n with_o other_o church_n it_o be_v also_o remarkable_a that_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n itself_o be_v uncertain_a ambiguous_a mutable_a and_o such_o as_o defacto_fw-la leave_v matter_n of_o strife_n among_o those_o person_n which_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o resolution_n thereof_o the_o dominican_n and_o jesuit_n contend_v eager_o at_o this_o day_n concern_v the_o sense_n and_o exposition_n of_o the_o trent_n council_n 9_o in_o the_o question_n of_o grace_n and_o freewill_n suares_n and_o vasques_n two_o prime_a jesuit_n be_v divide_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o that_o council_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n etc._n the_o like_a difference_n be_v find_v among_o many_o modern_a schoolman_n touch_v the_o manner_n of_o worship_v image_n and_o concern_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o eucharist_n whether_o the_o same_o be_v there_o by_o adduction_n or_o production_n wherein_o bellarmine_n hold_v the_o first_o and_o suares_n the_o latter_a opinion_n and_o if_o our_o adversary_n elevate_v these_o dissension_n pretend_v they_o to_o be_v small_a sure_o they_o be_v as_o weighty_a as_o the_o difference_n among_o protestant_n and_o last_o whatsoever_o romist_n pretend_v to_o the_o contrary_a the_o transcendent_a authority_n of_o pope_n be_v no_o sufficient_a or_o sovereign_a mean_n to_o preserve_v unity_n either_o of_o faith_n or_o charity_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n for_o when_o the_o papacy_n be_v most_o predominant_a the_o christian_a world_n be_v distract_v with_o contention_n about_o religion_n to_o wit_n between_o the_o roman_n grecian_n and_o other_o church_n and_o it_o be_v imbroyl_v with_o bloody_a war_n between_o pope_n and_o other_o prince_n and_o emperor_n etc._n and_o the_o roman_a see_v itself_o be_v rant_v into_o faction_n by_o occasion_n of_o antipope_n neither_o be_v the_o transcendent_a authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n any_o effectual_a mean_n to_o promote_v common_a unity_n but_o the_o ambition_n and_o oppression_n thereof_o be_v a_o perpetual_a seminary_n and_o incentive_a of_o mischief_n and_o discord_n therefore_o the_o mean_n for_o his_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n to_o cause_n unity_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v not_o the_o advance_v of_o papal_a supremacy_n which_o be_v a_o firebrand_n of_o contention_n but_o the_o maintain_n of_o the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o procure_n if_o it_o may_v be_v of_o a_o free_a and_o lawful_a council_n wherein_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n may_v have_v pre-eminence_n and_o wherein_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v a_o subject_n as_o well_o as_o other_o pastor_n jesuit_fw-la a_o church_n fallible_a in_o her_o teach_n be_v by_o the_o learned_a to_o be_v trust_v no_o further_o than_o they_o do_v see_v her_o doctrine_n consonant_n unto_o scripture_n and_o so_o they_o may_v neglect_v her_o judgement_n when_o they_o seem_v to_o have_v evidence_n of_o scripture_n against_o she_o and_o if_o this_o liberty_n of_o contradiction_n be_v grant_v what_o hope_v of_o unity_n remain_v when_o a_o private_a man_n may_v wrangle_v eternal_o with_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o never_o be_v convince_v apparent_o of_o teach_v against_o the_o scripture_n whereof_o we_o have_v too_o many_o example_n answer_n a_o church_n fallible_a in_o judgement_n be_v to_o be_v trust_v when_o it_o confirm_v her_o doctrine_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v a_o infallible_a witness_n and_o although_o a_o church_n be_v subject_a to_o possibility_n of_o error_n and_o although_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o want_v divine_a proof_n be_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o learned_a as_o matter_n of_o faith_n debet_fw-la yet_o no_o liberty_n of_o contest_v the_o lawful_a authority_n of_o the_o same_o when_o it_o confirm_v her_o say_n by_o god_n word_n be_v hereby_o permit_v to_o contentious_a spirit_n and_o it_o be_v more_o probable_a that_o pastor_n of_o the_o
church_n assemble_v in_o god_n fear_n and_o not_o factious_o for_o their_o own_o end_n shall_v judge_v aright_o than_o pope_n which_o refer_v all_o thing_n to_o their_o own_o worldly_a end_n also_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o contradict_v a_o church_n define_v and_o speak_v of_o itself_o and_o another_o when_o it_o deliver_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ._n now_o whensoever_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o church_n be_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o holy_a scripture_n the_o voice_n thereof_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n and_o all_o people_n learned_a and_o unlearned_a be_v bind_v to_o hear_v and_o obey_v the_o same_o jesuit_fw-la if_o wetake_v out_o of_o the_o world_n a_o church_n infallible_a whence_o shall_v ignorant_a man_n learn_v which_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n the_o apostle_n deliver_v it_o be_v as_o evident_a as_o the_o sun_n shine_v at_o noon_n day_n and_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n have_v force_v some_o protestant_n to_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o controversy_n preface_n of_o religion_n in_o our_o time_n be_v grow_v in_o number_n so_o many_o and_o in_o nature_n so_o intricate_a that_o few_o have_v time_n and_o leisure_n few_o strength_n of_o understanding_n to_o examine_v they_o so_o that_o nothing_o remain_v for_o man_n desirous_a of_o satisfaction_n in_o thing_n of_o such_o consequence_n but_o diligent_o to_o search_v out_o which_o among_o all_o the_o society_n of_o man_n in_o the_o world_n be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n that_o so_o they_o may_v embrace_v her_o communion_n follow_v her_o direction_n rest_n in_o her_o judgement_n answer_n if_o the_o rule_n be_v infallible_a and_o the_o preach_a of_o pastor_n according_a to_o that_o rule_n ignorant_a person_n by_o the_o assistance_n of_o grace_n may_v learn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n from_o their_o teach_n without_o the_o least_o thought_n or_o reference_n more_o to_o the_o roman_a church_n than_o to_o any_o other_o church_n for_o although_o saint_n augustine_n and_o saint_n cyprian_n be_v subject_a to_o error_n yet_o the_o unlearned_a people_n of_o hippo_n and_o carthage_n receive_v right_a faith_n by_o their_o ministry_n with_o assurance_n that_o the_o same_o descend_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o it_o be_v as_o evident_a as_o the_o sun_n shine_v that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o sole_a authentical_a ground_n of_o faith_n etc._n and_o the_o only_a infallible_a rule_n to_o decide_v controversy_n and_o the_o pastor_n of_o other_o church_n if_o they_o use_v the_o mean_n and_o have_v sufficient_a knowledge_n and_o the_o assistance_n of_o ordinary_a grace_n may_v be_v as_o infallible_a in_o their_o doctrine_n as_o roman_a prelate_n and_o although_o unlearned_a people_n depend_v upon_o their_o pastor_n like_o sick_a man_n upon_o their_o physician_n yet_o where_o they_o enjoy_v the_o free_a use_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o in_o ancient_a time_n all_o people_n do_v and_o if_o they_o be_v careful_a of_o their_o own_o salvation_n and_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o truth_n god_n bless_v his_o own_o ordinance_n and_o ordinary_o assist_v they_o by_o his_o grace_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v seduce_v to_o damnation_n math._n 24.24_o and_o if_o they_o be_v distract_v in_o small_a point_n by_o the_o dissension_n of_o teacher_n their_o error_n in_o this_o case_n be_v excusable_a tenebunt_fw-la but_o howsoever_o the_o roman_a church_n can_v be_v no_o great_a stay_n to_o they_o than_o other_o church_n but_o only_o by_o lead_v they_o to_o a_o blind_a obedience_n svo_fw-la like_v as_o pagan_n be_v lead_v in_o another_o kind_n dr._n field_n testimony_n concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o learning_n which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n the_o ground_n and_o pillar_n of_o truth_n etc._n etc._n serve_v not_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o definition_n of_o any_o modern_a church_n be_v absolute_o and_o universal_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o supreme_a judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n or_o free_a from_o all_o error_n for_o this_o learned_a divine_a speak_v of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o general_a as_o it_o contain_v the_o holy_a apostle_n and_o those_o which_o succeed_v they_o in_o all_o age_n in_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o deliver_v to_o the_o world_n and_o concern_v the_o present_a church_n he_o ascribe_v no_o more_o unto_o it_o but_o to_o be_v a_o manuduction_n and_o guider_n to_o save_v verity_n confirm_v and_o ground_v upon_o the_o holy_a scripture_n neither_o make_v he_o the_o authority_n and_o definition_n thereof_o absolute_a but_o dependent_a upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n jesuit_fw-la if_o there_o be_v no_o church_n beside_o the_o roman_a in_o the_o world_n that_o can_v with_o any_o colour_n pretend_v infallibility_n of_o judgement_n if_o the_o most_o part_n of_o man_n can_v by_o their_o examine_n of_o controversy_n be_v resolve_v in_o faith_n and_o therefore_o must_v perish_v eternal_o except_o they_o find_v a_o church_n that_o be_v a_o infallible_a mistress_n of_o truth_n in_o who_o judgement_n they_o may_v secure_o rest_v certain_o those_o that_o have_v bowel_n of_o charity_n will_v accept_v of_o any_o probable_a answer_n unto_o protestant_n objection_n and_o accusation_n rather_o than_o discredit_v the_o authority_n of_o so_o necessary_a a_o church_n which_o be_v discredit_v no_o church_n remain_v in_o the_o world_n of_o credit_n sufficient_a to_o sustain_v the_o weight_n of_o christian_a that_o be_v infallible_a belief_n answer_n unlearned_a people_n must_v rely_v upon_o the_o ministry_n of_o some_o modern_a church_n not_o as_o a_o ground_n and_o rule_v of_o their_o faith_n but_o as_o a_o helper_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o although_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n whereupon_o they_o depend_v be_v not_o absolute_o infallible_a or_o free_a from_o error_n yet_o their_o salvation_n be_v not_o by_o this_o mean_v impeach_v neither_o do_v they_o perish_v eternal_o for_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o a_o church_n subject_a to_o error_n as_o hippo_n carthage_n lion_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n augustine_n s._n cyprian_n s._n ireneus_fw-la shall_v at_o all_o time_n actual_o err_v or_o grievous_o err_v at_o any_o time_n and_o when_o it_o deliver_v the_o doctrine_n of_o holy_a scripture_n it_o be_v herein_o free_a from_o error_n and_o christian_a people_n by_o compare_v the_o doctrine_n thereof_o with_o the_o scripture_n vobis_fw-la may_v certain_o know_v that_o it_o err_v not_o act._n 17._o 11._o and_o touch_v the_o roman_a church_n upon_o what_o ground_n be_v christian_a people_n able_a to_o know_v by_o assurance_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o be_v more_o infallible_a than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o other_o church_n but_o if_o rome_n be_v babylon_n describe_v revelat._n ca._n 14._o 8._o &_o 17_o 5._o &_o 18._o 2._o as_o weighty_a motive_n induce_v some_o man_n to_o think_v contendit_fw-la than_o it_o be_v most_o safe_a for_o people_n to_o renounce_v the_o communion_n of_o this_o church_n as_o it_o now_o believe_v and_o to_o live_v in_o the_o fellowship_n of_o that_o church_n which_o ground_v her_o faith_n on_o holy_a scripture_n and_o not_o upon_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n consistant_fw-la apoc._n 18.4_o jesuit_fw-la what_o amiserie_n will_v it_o be_v if_o it_o fall_v out_o as_o it_o be_v most_o likely_a it_o will_v fall_v out_o that_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n the_o most_o part_n of_o english_a protestant_n be_v find_v to_o have_v believe_v point_n of_o doctrine_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n not_o out_o of_o their_o own_o certain_a skill_n in_o scripture_n as_o they_o shall_v by_o the_o principle_n of_o their_o religion_n but_o upon_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o church_n that_o teachech_v they_o which_o do_v acknowledge_v herself_o to_o be_v no_o sufficient_a stay_n of_o assure_a belief_n for_o without_o question_n man_n can_v be_v save_v who_o although_o they_o believe_v the_o truth_n yet_o believe_v it_o upon_o a_o deceivable_a ground_n and_o consequent_o by_o humane_a and_o fallible_a persuasion_n and_o not_o as_o need_n be_v by_o a_o divine_a most_o certain_a belief_n growd_v upon_o aninfallible_a foundation_n which_o can_v be_v have_v without_o a_o infallible_a church_n answer_n what_o a_o misery_n will_v it_o be_v if_o it_o fall_v out_o as_o it_o be_v certain_a it_o will_v that_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n the_o great_a part_n of_o english_a romist_n be_v find_v to_o have_v renounce_v the_o express_a and_o manifest_a word_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o sincere_a faith_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o in_o stead_n thereof_o to_o have_v embrace_v lie_v vanity_n and_o the_o deceivable_a tradition_n anteponere_fw-la of_o the_o man_n of_o fin_n the_o son_n of_o perdition_n who_o exalt_v himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n or_o that_o be_v worship_v 2._o thes._n 2_o 3_o 4._o for_o out_o of_o all_o doubt_n man_n can_v be_v save_v
which_o have_v forsake_v the_o fountain_n of_o live_a water_n and_o hew_v they_o out_o cistern_n even_o break_v cistern_n that_o can_v hold_v no_o water_n jer._n 2._o 13._o and_o if_o any_o man_n worship_v the_o beast_n and_o his_o image_n and_o receive_v his_o mark_n in_o his_o forehead_n or_o in_o his_o hand_n the_o same_o shall_v drink_v of_o the_o wine_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n and_o he_o shall_v be_v torment_v with_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n apoc._n 14._o 9_o 10._o and_o on_o the_o contrary_a they_o which_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n speak_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n reponamus_fw-la and_o build_v their_o faith_n upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v the_o head_n corner_n stone_n eph._n 2._o 20._o joh._n 10._o 27_o all_o they_o which_o keep_v the_o commuandement_n of_o god_n and_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n apoc._n 14._o 12._o refuse_v to_o worship_n angel_n col._n 2._o 18._o or_o dead_a image_n 1._o joh._n 5._o 20_o which_o call_v upon_o god_n in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n only_o which_o receive_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n in_o both_o kind_n according_a to_o our_o saviour_n precept_n and_o the_o constant_a practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o believe_v free_a remission_n of_o sin_n and_o justification_n by_o a_o lively_a faith_n for_o the_o sole_a merit_n of_o christ_n which_o honour_n the_o king_n as_o god_n supreme_a vicegerent_n which_o praise_n god_n with_o understanding_n and_o invocate_v the_o bless_a trinity_n in_o a_o know_a language_n and_o maintain_v obedience_n to_o all_o moral_a and_o evangelicall_a commandment_n and_o submit_v their_o private_a judgement_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostolic_a and_o catholic_a church_n all_o these_o i_o say_v build_v their_o soul_n upon_o the_o rock_n and_o not_o upon_o the_o sand_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n can_v prevail_v against_o they_o and_o maugre_o all_o the_o limb_n of_o antichrist_n they_o shall_v never_o perish_v neither_o shall_v any_o man_n pluck_v they_o out_o of_o their_o saviour_n hand_n jesuit_fw-la how_o dreadful_a then_o must_v the_o danger_n be_v of_o live_v out_o of_o the_o lap_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o be_v of_o a_o church_n of_o infallible_a authority_n this_o church_n have_v a_o most_o glorious_a succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o the_o apostle_n deserve_v above_o all_o other_o the_o protection_n of_o your_o majesty_n that_o by_o a_o long_a line_n of_o religious_a catholic_a ancestor_n succeed_v in_o the_o right_n of_o two_o illustrious_a kingdom_n and_o be_v so_o beneficial_a unto_o mankind_n and_o so_o efficatious_a to_o maintain_v unity_n can_v give_v over_o hope_n of_o your_o favour_n who_o singular_a preservation_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o your_o glorious_a mother_n against_o the_o barbarous_a attempt_n of_o heretical_a division_n that_o will_v have_v bring_v you_o to_o a_o immature_n end_n show_v to_o be_v by_o god_n infinite_a wisdom_n preordain_v for_o some_o singular_a good_a of_o mankind_n special_o by_o your_o mean_n to_o quench_v war_n and_o dissension_n and_o to_o bestow_v the_o blessing_n of_o peace_n and_o union_n on_o this_o land_n your_o title_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n spring_v from_o the_o peaceful_a conjunction_n of_o the_o two_o renown_a rose_n which_o before_o be_v mortal_a enemy_n and_o fight_v so_o many_o cruel_a field_n that_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o great_a effusion_n of_o blood_n wherein_o each_o of_o they_o be_v bathe_v we_o shall_v hardly_o discern_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o by_o the_o diversity_n of_o colour_n your_o majesty_n person_n be_v the_o root_n of_o a_o more_o happy_a union_n of_o two_o most_o glorious_a kingdom_n by_o your_o sacred_a person_n combine_v in_o assure_a peace_n which_o in_o the_o history_n of_o former_a time_n be_v by_o no_o other_o mark_n more_o famous_o know_v than_o by_o their_o mutual_a war_n nothing_o remain_v to_o be_v add_v for_o the_o full_a consummation_n of_o this_o land_n happiness_n and_o your_o majesty_n immortal_a glory_n but_o the_o quench_n of_o discord_n about_o religion_n by_o bring_v they_o back_o again_o to_o the_o root_n and_o matrice_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o the_o principal_a see_v from_o which_o sacerdocall_a and_o sacred_a unity_n spring_v whereby_o 45._o your_o majesty_n shall_v extend_v the_o blessing_n of_o peace_n from_o this_o island_n to_o the_o rest_n of_o europe_n from_o the_o body_n unto_o the_o soul_n and_o crown_v your_o temporal_a peace_n and_o felicity_n with_o eternal_a for_o both_o which_o not_o only_o i_o but_o all_o of_o my_o profession_n yea_o all_o catholic_n will_v offer_v unto_o almighty_a god_n our_o daily_a prayer_n answer_n sir_n declamator_n you_o usurp_v radamanthus_n his_o office_n over_o his_o head_n and_o be_v a_o delinquent_n make_v yourself_o a_o judge_n we_o understand_v your_o uttermost_a strength_n in_o propugn_v the_o absolute_a soveraignitie_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o essence_n of_o your_o creed_n in_o this_o and_o other_o point_n consist_v in_o supposal_n and_o conceit_n for_o ourselves_o we_o be_v assure_v by_o that_o which_o can_v deceive_v we_o the_o undoubted_a word_n of_o the_o eternal_a god_n that_o our_o faith_n and_o religion_n be_v according_a to_o verity_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v judge_v at_o the_o latter_a day_n not_o by_o the_o conceit_n of_o our_o enemy_n but_o by_o the_o word_n and_o gospel_n of_o christ_n rom._n 2._o 16._o now_o the_o lap_n of_o your_o roman_a church_n since_o the_o day_n of_o hildebrand_n and_o his_o faction_n be_v enlarge_v to_o a_o vast_a size_n adulantur_fw-la and_o we_o be_v depart_v from_o the_o filthiness_n which_o be_v the_o skirt_n of_o that_o lap_n but_o not_o from_o any_o branch_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n disproove_v we_o if_o you_o be_v able_a by_o divine_a authority_n and_o then_o make_v ostentation_n at_o your_o pleasure_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n judge_v charitable_o of_o we_o who_o be_v more_o ready_a to_o entertain_v truth_n than_o you_o to_o persuade_v us._n as_o for_o glorious_a fuccession_n about_o which_o your_o triumph_n if_o you_o want_v the_o life_n and_o soul_n thereof_o to_o wit_n apostolical_a doctrine_n and_o if_o according_a to_o the_o relation_n of_o your_o bosom_n friend_n the_o same_o in_o the_o very_a external_a face_n thereof_o have_v be_v miserable_o blast_v prostibulum_fw-la pardon_v we_o if_o we_o make_v not_o our_o final_a and_o absolute_a dependence_n upon_o it_o and_o to_o proceed_v to_o the_o last_o part_n of_o your_o declamation_n wherein_o you_o solicit_v his_o majesty_n to_o advance_v your_o superstition_n put_v he_o in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o preservation_n in_o his_o mother_n womb_n and_o of_o the_o unite_n of_o the_o two_o renown_a rose_n you_o must_v understand_v that_o his_o majesty_n royal_a person_n be_v preserve_v in_o his_o mother_n womb_n and_o at_o the_o powder_n treason_n by_o the_o god_n of_o truth_n and_o he_o flourish_v as_o a_o cedar_n of_o libanus_n with_o all_o honour_n happiness_n and_o safety_n and_o with_o enjoy_v the_o unfeigned_a love_n of_o all_o his_o loyal_a subject_n by_o the_o faith_n profession_n and_o protection_n of_o that_o verity_n which_o be_v teach_v of_o god_n and_o which_o will_v make_v he_o bless_v at_o his_o latter_a end_n but_o if_o he_o shall_v which_o be_v impossible_a be_v persuade_v to_o give_v ear_n to_o such_o betuefeus_fw-la as_o many_o of_o your_o crew_n be_v the_o white_a rose_n you_o speak_v of_o by_o your_o malice_n may_v again_o turn_v red_a for_o wheresoever_o the_o sole_n of_o your_o foot_n take_v fast_o foot_n your_o manner_n be_v to_o die_v all_o thing_n in_o blood_n either_o by_o civil_a war_n or_o by_o fire_n and_o faggot_n but_o i_o wonder_v upon_o what_o surmise_n romist_n can_v build_v their_o vain_a hope_n of_o surprise_v his_o majesty_n by_o plausible_a blandishment_n and_o insinuation_n movere_fw-la these_o enchantment_n be_v fit_a for_o lapse_v lady_n and_o other_o mutable_a chameleon_n but_o our_o lord_n the_o king_n dominicigregis_fw-la be_v as_o a_o angel_n of_o god_n discern_v good_a and_o evil_a the_o adversary_n himself_o have_v feel_v the_o force_n of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o this_o solomon_n and_o one_o may_v soon_o with_o a_o twine_v thread_n pluck_v up_o a_o tall_a cedar_n by_o the_o root_n or_o with_o a_o fisher_n line_n hale_v the_o great_a rock_n from_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o sea_n than_o transplant_v this_o great_a and_o religious_a constantine_n evertuntur_fw-la out_o of_o the_o paradise_n manducate_a of_o sacred_a scripture_n into_o the_o dark_a thicket_n of_o humane_a tradition_n seperatur_fw-la and_o night-sprung_a weed_n nec_fw-la dicere_fw-la aliquid_fw-la nec_fw-la facere_fw-la contra_fw-la christum_fw-la potest_fw-la cvius_fw-la &_o spes_fw-la &_o fides_fw-la &_o virtus_fw-la &_o gloria_fw-la omnis_fw-la in_fw-la christo_fw-la est_fw-la cyprian_n lib._n d._n lapsis_fw-la it_o be_v impossible_a that_o
with_o himself_o in_o adoration_n jesuit_fw-la second_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a bring_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o jmage_n yet_o forbid_v that_o any_o image_n shall_v be_v adore_v with_o divine_a honour_n he_o both_o contradict_v himself_o and_o utter_v another_o manifest_a falsehood_n he_o contradict_v himself_o in_o say_v that_o the_o nicene_n council_n forbid_v divine_a worship_n of_o any_o image_n see_v in_o another_o place_n he_o thus_o write_v both_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o the_o divine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v the_o jmage_n of_o god_n 453._o and_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o cross_n must_v be_v adore_v with_o divine_a adoration_n it_o be_v apparent_o false_a that_o the_o say_v nicene_n council_n bring_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o jmage_n which_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o many_o testimony_n but_o this_o only_a may_v suffice_v that_o isaurico_fw-la leo_n isauricus_n before_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a oppose_a image_n worship_n not_o as_o then_o beginning_n but_o for_o many_o year_n before_o establish_v in_o the_o church_n boast_v that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n the_o rest_n have_v be_v idolater_n because_o they_o worship_v image_n so_o manifest_o do_v he_o oppose_v antiquity_n and_o so_o little_a truth_n there_o be_v in_o m._n whites_n assertion_n answer_n the_o second_o nicene_n synod_n bring_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n not_o simple_o but_o by_o define_v the_o same_o to_o be_v necessary_a and_o by_o appoint_v the_o practice_n thereof_o to_o be_v receive_v universal_o otherwise_o m._n john_n white_n be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o the_o israelite_n worship_v melt_v image_n in_o dan_n and_o bethell_n and_o the_o simonian_o worship_v image_n eusebius_n eccles._n hist._n lib._n 2._o ca._n 13._o and_o the_o gnosticke_n worship_v christ_n his_o image_n iren._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 24._o and_o marcellina_n worship_v the_o image_n of_o jefu_n and_o paul_n etc._n etc._n aug._n d._n haer._n 7._o haeres_fw-la the_o marsilian_o also_o or_o people_n thereabouts_o worship_v image_n in_o the_o day_n of_o serenus_n greg._n li._n 7._o epist._n 109._o &_o lib._n 9_o epist._n 9_o but_o all_o these_o be_v condemn_v of_o superstition_n by_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o second_o nicene_n synod_n be_v censure_v and_o the_o definition_n thereof_o resist_v by_o many_o as_o i_o have_v former_o prove_v pag._n 210._o and_o because_o the_o jesuit_n rehearse_v a_o story_n out_o of_o zonara_n a_o author_n which_o themselves_o regard_v not_o etc._n i_o will_v requite_v he_o with_o a_o more_o certain_a history_n out_o of_o roger_n hoveden_n attulit_fw-la a_o native_a historian_n of_o the_o affair_n of_o britain_n his_o word_n be_v these_o charles_n the_o french_a king_n send_v a_o synodal_n into_o britain_n direct_v unto_o he_o from_o constantinople_n in_o the_o which_o book_n many_o thing_n out_o alas_o inconvenient_a and_o repugnant_a to_o right_a faith_n be_v find_v especial_o it_o be_v confirm_v almost_o by_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o eastern_a doctor_n no_o less_o than_o three_o hundred_o or_o more_o that_o image_n ought_v to_o be_v worship_v which_o thing_n the_o church_n of_o god_n do_v altogether_o detest_v against_o which_o synodal_n book_n albinus_n write_v a_o epistle_n marvelous_o confirm_v by_o authority_n of_o divine_a scripture_n and_o carry_v the_o same_o to_o the_o french_a king_n together_o with_o the_o foresay_a book_n in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o bishop_n and_o prince_n jesuit_fw-la three_o to_o pass_v yet_o up_o high_o that_o image_n begin_v in_o gregory_n the_o great_a his_o time_n and_o that_o he_o forbid_v the_o worship_n of_o they_o contain_v other_o three_o falsehood_n first_o gregory_n be_v abuse_v who_o only_o command_v that_o none_o shall_v worship_v image_n as_o god_n 〈◊〉_d as_o gentiles_n do_v 25._o that_o some_o godhead_n be_v affix_v unto_o they_o as_o he_o elsewhere_o declare_v himself_o and_o so_o manifest_o do_v he_o teach_v image_n worship_n establish_v pilgrimage_n unto_o they_o by_o indulgence_n as_o friar_n bale_n accuse_v he_o thereof_o yea_o m._n symonds_n and_o m._n bale_n write_v that_o leo_n a_o hundred_o and_o forty_o year_n before_o gregory_n decree_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n answer_n gregory_n word_n be_v imagine_v adorare_fw-la omnibus_fw-la modis_fw-la devita_fw-la by_o 9_o all_o mean_n shun_v the_o worship_v of_o image_n aliud_fw-la est_fw-la picturam_fw-la adorare_fw-la aliud_fw-la per_fw-la picturae_fw-la historiam_fw-la quid_fw-la sit_fw-la adorandum_fw-la addiscere_fw-la it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o worship_v a_o picture_n another_o by_o the_o story_n of_o the_o picture_n to_o learn_v what_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v non_fw-la ad_fw-la adorandum_fw-la in_o ecclesijs_fw-la sed_fw-la ad_fw-la instruendas_fw-la solummodo_fw-la mentes_fw-la fuit_fw-la nescientium_fw-la collocatum_fw-la it_o be_v place_v in_o the_o church_n only_o to_o instruct_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o ignorant_a and_o not_o to_o be_v worship_v and_o in_o another_o epistle_n quatenus_fw-la literarum_fw-la nescij_fw-la haberent_fw-la undè_fw-la 109._o scientiae_fw-la historiam_fw-la colligerent_fw-la first_o in_o these_o passage_n of_o s._n gregory_n we_o find_v no_o use_n of_o image_n allow_v but_o only_o historical_a second_o he_o say_v positive_o they_o be_v not_o set_v up_o to_o be_v worship_n bed_n but_o only_o to_o instruct_v the_o ignorant_a and_o although_o in_o the_o 53._o place_n object_v he_o say_v non_fw-la ut_fw-la quasi_fw-la deum_fw-la colas_fw-la not_o that_o thou_o shall_v worship_v they_o as_o god_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o approve_v the_o worship_v of_o they_o any_o other_o way_n but_o add_v we_o do_v not_o bow_v down_o before_o they_o as_o before_o the_o deity_n he_o say_v not_o quasi_fw-la ad_fw-la dietatem_fw-la as_o to_o the_o deity_n sed_fw-la quasi_fw-la ante_fw-la as_o before_o the_o deity_n three_o cassander_n incitarentur_fw-la a_o learned_a papist_n confess_v ingenuous_o that_o gregory_n the_o great_a forbid_v all_o worship_n of_o image_n but_o our_o latter_a idolist_n use_v no_o measure_n or_o modesty_n in_o elude_v and_o pervert_v the_o evident_a sentence_n of_o the_o father_n jesuit_fw-la second_o polydore_n in_o this_o point_n be_v egregious_o falsify_v for_o he_o say_v not_o as_o the_o minister_n make_v he_o speak_v all_o father_n condemn_v the_o worship_n of_o jmage_n for_o fear_n of_o idolatry_n but_o his_o word_n be_v cultum_fw-la imaginum_fw-la testae_fw-la hieronimo_fw-la omnes_fw-la veteres_fw-la patres_fw-la damnabant_fw-la metu_fw-la idololatriae_fw-la all_o the_o old_a father_n as_o hierom_n witness_v do_v condemn_v worship_n of_o image_n for_o fear_n of_o idolatry_n by_o the_o old_a father_n mean_v the_o father_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n not_o of_o the_o new_a which_o appear_v because_o in_o proof_n of_o his_o say_n he_o bring_v not_o the_o testimony_n of_o any_o father_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o only_o of_o the_o old_a as_o of_o moses_n david_n jeremie_n and_o other_o prophet_n and_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o whole_a chapter_n be_v to_o declare_v that_o the_o reason_n why_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o father_n mislike_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o image_n of_o god_n be_v because_o they_o can_v not_o paint_v he_o aright_o cum_fw-la deum_fw-la nemo_fw-la vidisset_fw-la unquam_fw-la because_o than_o no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n afterward_o god_n say_v polidore_n have_v take_v flesh_n and_o be_v become_v visible_a to_o mortal_a eye_n man_n 13._o flock_v unto_o he_o and_o do_v without_o doubt_n behold_v and_o reverence_v his_o face_n shine_v with_o the_o brightness_n of_o divine_a light_n and_o even_o then_o they_o begin_v to_o paint_v or_o carve_v his_o image_n already_o imprint_v in_o their_o mind_n and_o those_o image_n say_v he_o they_o receive_v with_o great_a worship_n and_o veneration_n as_o be_v reason_n the_o honour_n of_o the_o image_n redound_v to_o the_o original_n as_o basill_n write_v which_o custom_n of_o adore_a image_n the_o father_n be_v so_o far_o from_o reprove_v as_o they_o do_v not_o only_o admit_v thereof_o but_o also_o decree_v and_o command_v the_o same_o by_o general_a counsel_n in_o the_o time_n of_o justinian_n the_o second_o and_o constantine_n his_o son_n what_o man_n then_o be_v there_o so_o dissolute_a and_o audacious_a as_o can_v dream_v of_o the_o contrary_a and_o doubt_v of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o this_o worship_n establish_v so_o long_o ago_o by_o the_o decree_n of_o most_o holy_a father_n thus_o write_v polidore_n and_o much_o more_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n in_o the_o very_a place_n where_o the_o minister_n cit_v he_o to_o the_o contrary_a which_o show_v how_o notorious_o his_o credulous_a reader_n be_v abuse_v in_o matter_n of_o most_o moment_n 〈◊〉_d whence_o appear_v the_o three_o falsehood_n that_o in_o gregory_n day_n image_n begin_v to_o be_v set_v up_o in_o church_n which_o to_o have_v be_v in_o church_n long_o before_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n basil_n paulinus_n lactantius_n and_o tertullian_n do_v
sufficient_o 〈◊〉_d answer_n polydore_v word_n be_v touch_v the_o beginning_n of_o image_n we_o idololatriae_fw-la have_v treat_v before_o now_o here_o we_o will_v speak_v of_o their_o worship_n which_o not_o only_o man_n of_o contrary_a religion_n but_o as_o saint_n hierom_n witness_v almost_o all_o the_o ancient_a holy_a father_n condemn_v for_o fear_n of_o idolatry_n etc._n etc._n 〈◊〉_d the_o obiectour_n say_v that_o this_o place_n be_v falsify_v and_o his_o reason_n be_v polydore_n speak_v of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o wit_n of_o moses_n daniel_n jeremie_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o he_o say_v that_o they_o condemn_v worship_n of_o image_n because_o christ_n be_v not_o as_o then_o incarnate_a etc._n etc._n but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o that_o polydore_n speak_v for_o among_o those_o father_n he_o place_v gregory_n inhibuisset_fw-la the_o great_a write_v to_o serenus_n and_o although_o christ_n be_v not_o make_v man_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o prophet_n yet_o he_o have_v appear_v in_o the_o similitude_n of_o man_n 2.3_o and_o abraham_n moses_n elias_n and_o the_o prophet_n be_v man_n their_o picture_n may_v have_v be_v worship_v if_o adoration_n of_o image_n have_v be_v lawful_a and_o beside_o polydore_n cassander_n 975._o and_o many_o other_o pontifician_n affirm_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n in_o the_o primative_a church_n abhor_v or_o at_o least_o abstain_v from_o the_o have_v and_o worship_v of_o image_n which_o be_v also_o confirm_v by_o their_o testimony_n jesuit_fw-la neither_o can_v our_o adversary_n bring_v any_o clear_a testimony_n of_o antiquity_n against_o this_o custom_n for_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o eliberis_n that_o no_o picture_n shall_v be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n lest_o that_o which_o be_v worship_v or_o adore_v be_v paint_v in_o wall_n which_o the_o minister_n much_o urge_v 345._o clear_o signify_v the_o contrary_a for_o may_v not_o image_n paint_v on_o table_n be_v in_o church_n and_o yet_o neither_o make_v in_o the_o church_n nor_o paint_v on_o wall_n which_o kind_n of_o image_n this_o council_n do_v not_o forbid_v and_o why_o do_v the_o council_n forbid_v image_n to_o be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n as_o pertinent_a to_o the_o fabric_n thereof_o or_o to_o be_v paint_v on_o wall_n but_o out_o of_o reverence_n unto_o image_n for_o they_o be_v holy_a thing_n and_o so_o to_o be_v honour_v for_o their_o prototype_n sake_n the_o council_n think_v it_o unworthy_a of_o their_o dignity_n they_o shall_v be_v make_v on_o wall_n where_o they_o may_v easy_o be_v deface_v and_o deform_v and_o by_o persecutor_n for_o that_o council_n be_v hold_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n abuse_v answer_n no_o testimony_n can_v be_v so_o clear_a which_o sophister_n will_v not_o labour_v to_o pervert_v and_o elude_v otherwise_o what_o be_v clear_a against_o image_n worship_n than_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o elliberis_n and_o epiphanius_n it_o be_v lose_v labour_n to_o contest_v with_o man_n qui_fw-la sola_fw-la pertinacia_fw-la pugnaces_fw-la neruos_fw-la contra_fw-la perspicuam_fw-la veritatem_fw-la intendunt_fw-la as_o saint_n augustine_n speak_v which_o upon_o sole_a pertinacie_n bend_v their_o uttermost_a force_n to_o gainsay_v perspicuous_a verity_n first_o the_o council_n of_o elliberis_n be_v so_o clear_a against_o image_n worship_n that_o many_o pontifician_n of_o great_a note_n acknowledge_v the_o same_o and_o thereupon_o condemn_v or_o elevate_v the_o authority_n of_o that_o council_n etc._n second_o if_o that_o council_n forbid_v the_o be_v of_o image_n in_o church_n than_o it_o do_v much_o more_o hold_v the_o worship_n of_o they_o to_o be_v unlawful_a but_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o canon_n apparent_o show_v that_o placuit_fw-la in_o ecclesijs_fw-la picturas_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la debere_fw-la it_o 〈◊〉_d we_o of_o the_o council_n that_o picture_n may_v not_o be_v in_o church_n jesuit_fw-la he_o do_v also_o much_o insist_v upon_o epiphanius_n but_o relate_v 245._o according_a to_o his_o fashion_n both_o his_o fact_n and_o word_n unsincere_o epiphanius_n say_v he_o find_v a_o image_n paint_v on_o a_o cloth_n hang_v in_o a_o church_n rend_v it_o do_v wne_z and_o say_v it_o be_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o any_o image_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o church_n thus_o he_o unsincere_o as_o i_o say_v not_o express_v what_o kind_n of_o image_n that_o be_v that_o epiphanius_n in_o piece_n for_o epiphanius_n say_v cum_fw-la iwenissem_fw-la imaginem_fw-la hominis_fw-la pendentem_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la tanquam_fw-la christi_fw-la aut_fw-la alicuius_fw-la sancti_fw-la nescio_fw-la enim_fw-la cvius_fw-la erat_fw-la when_o i_o bid_v find_v a_o image_n of_o a_o man_n hang_v in_o the_o church_n as_o of_o christ_n or_o of_o some_o saint_n for_o i_o know_v not_o of_o who_o the_o image_n be_v epiphanius_n do_v by_o this_o relation_n more_o than_o insinuate_v that_o this_o be_v the_o image_n of_o some_o profane_a man_n hang_v in_o the_o church_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v a_o sacred_a image_n of_o christ_n or_o some_o saint_n which_o be_v gather_v by_o this_o reason_n when_o i_o see_v say_v he_o against_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n the_o image_n of_o a_o man_n hang_v in_o the_o church_n not_o absolute_o any_o image_n as_o mr._n white_n cit_v he_o for_o even_o by_o god_n express_a command_n image_n be_v place_v in_o the_o temple_n but_o the_o image_n of_o a_o man_n why_o do_v epiphanius_n so_o 6._o much_o urge_v the_o impiety_n of_o the_o fact_n in_o regard_n that_o it_o be_v the_o image_n of_o a_o man_n but_o that_o he_o understand_v by_o the_o word_n man_n a_o mere_a ordinary_a profane_a man_n not_o a_o bless_a saint_n for_o certain_o it_o may_v seem_v more_o against_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n to_o make_v and_o set_v up_o in_o church_n the_o image_n of_o god_n than_o the_o image_n of_o holy_a man_n and_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o godhead_n than_o as_o he_o be_v man_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o epiph._n shall_v put_v so_o much_o emphasis_n in_o the_o word_n man_n have_v he_o not_o understand_v a_o profane_a man_n for_o some_o christian_n in_o those_o day_n be_v new_o convert_v from_o paganism_n and_o so_o retain_v some_o relic_n thereof_o do_v out_o of_o affection_n unto_o their_o decease_a friend_n and_o parent_n use_v to_o paint_v their_o image_n and_o offer_v unto_o they_o oblation_n of_o frankincense_n and_o other_o the_o like_o heathenish_a honour_n special_o on_o their_o anniversary_n day_n upon_o their_o sepulchre_n these_o man_n s._n augustine_n reprehend_v and_o not_o the_o worshipper_n of_o saint_n 36._o image_n under_o the_o title_n of_o sepulchrorum_fw-la &_o picturarum_fw-la adoratores_fw-la who_o to_o the_o ghost_n of_o their_o parent_n defunct_a do_v though_o christian_n offer_v that_o heathenish_a worship_n which_o the_o poet_n exhort_v unto_o non_fw-la pigeat_fw-la tumulis_fw-la animas_fw-la excire_fw-la paternis_fw-la paucaque_fw-la in_o extructos_fw-la mittere_fw-la thura_fw-la rogos_fw-la parua_fw-la petunt_fw-la manes_fw-la answer_n this_o place_n of_o epiphanius_n be_v a_o thorn_n in_o the_o papist_n side_n and_o they_o be_v so_o distract_v about_o the_o clear_n of_o it_o that_o vasques_n recensere_fw-la say_v it_o be_v a_o irksome_a thing_n to_o report_v what_o each_o of_o they_o have_v speak_v some_o of_o they_o reject_v the_o epistle_n say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o counterfeit_a 22._o work_n but_o this_o opinion_n be_v reprove_v and_o confute_v by_o the_o learned_a of_o their_o own_o part_n 341._o and_o what_o can_v be_v more_o improbable_a than_o that_o saint_n hierome_n will_v translate_v a_o counterfeit_a work_n other_o say_v that_o epiphanius_n do_v this_o in_o a_o preposterous_a zeal_n 200._o ferdinandus_n velosillus_n anmumeratur_fw-la or_o velosius_fw-la as_o possevine_a call_v he_o say_v as_o follow_v epiphanius_n against_o the_o colliridian_n heresy_n inveigh_v bitter_o against_o statue_n and_o image_n of_o man_n and_o against_o their_o worship_n and_o again_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o john_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n he_o taunt_v they_o currish_o or_o despiteful_o dente_fw-la canino_fw-la mordet_fw-la perhaps_o this_o man_n be_v excusable_a by_o reason_n of_o ignorance_n and_o because_o he_o write_v against_o idolater_n wherefore_o he_o be_v not_o rank_v among_o haeretike_n other_o affirm_v 247._o that_o epiphanius_n do_v this_o because_o of_o the_o abuse_n of_o superstitious_a people_n commit_v about_o that_o picture_n other_o say_v imago_fw-la he_o do_v thus_o because_o the_o contrary_n be_v not_o as_o then_o define_v by_o the_o church_n but_o vasques_n 4._o himself_o and_o before_o he_o marianus_n victorius_n hierom._n insist_v upon_o this_o poor_a shift_n which_o our_o adversary_n follow_v in_o this_o place_n to_o wit_n that_o this_o vale_n or_o curtain_n which_o epiphanius_n deface_v and_o rend_v asunder_o contain_v a_o image_n or_o picture_n of_o some_o profane_a man_n hang_v in_o the_o church_n as_o if_o